Selected quad for the lemma: reason_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
reason_n mean_n object_n use_v 6,529 5 9.7371 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A09339 A golden chaine: or The description of theologie containing the order of the causes of saluation and damnation, according to Gods word. A view whereof is to be seene in the table annexed. Hereunto is adioyned the order which M. Theodore Beza vsed in comforting afflicted consciences.; Selections Perkins, William, 1558-1602.; Bèze, Théodore de, 1519-1605. 1600 (1600) STC 19646; ESTC S114458 1,329,897 1,121

There are 49 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

father_n be_v well_o please_v and_o for_o who_o sake_n alone_o he_o be_v well_o please_v with_o us._n iv._o object_n sundry_a person_n in_o scripture_n be_v commend_v for_o perfection●_n as_o noah_n and_o abraham_n zacharie_n and_o elizabeth_n and_o christ_n bid_v we_o all_o be_v perfect_a and_o where_o there_o be_v any_o perfection_n of_o work_n there_o also_o work_n may_v justify_v ans._n there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o perfection_n perfection_n in_o part_n and_o perfection_n in_o degree_n perfection_n in_o part_n be_v when_o be_v regenerate_v and_o have_v the_o seed_n of_o all_o necessary_a virtue_n we_o endeavour_v according_o to_o obey_v god_n not_o in_o some_o few_o but_o in_o all_o and_o every_o part_n of_o the_o law_n as_o josias_n turn_v unto_o god_n according_a to_o all_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n perfection_n in_o degree_n be_v when_o a_o man_n keep_v every_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o rigour_n thereof_o in_o the_o very_o high_a degree_n now_o than_o whereas_o we_o be_v command_v to_o be_v perfect_v and_o have_v example_n of_o the_o same_o perfection_n in_o scripture_n both_o commandment_n and_o example_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o perfection_n in_o part_n and_o not_o of_o perfection_n in_o degree_n which_o cannot_v be_v attain_v unto_o in_o this_o life_n though_o we_o for_o our_o part_n must_v daily_o strive_v to_o come_v as_o near_o unto_o it_o as_o possible_o we_o can_v v._o object_n 2._o cor._n 4._o 17._o our_o momentany_a affliction_n work_v unto_o we_o a_o great_a measure_n of_o glory_n now_o if_o affliction_n work_v our_o salvation_n then_o work_v also_o do_v the_o same_o ans._n affliction_n work_v salvation_n not_o as_o cause_n procure_v it_o but_o as_o mean_n direct_v we_o thereto_o and_o thus_o always_o must_v we_o esteem_v of_o work_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o salvation_n as_o of_o a_o certain_a way_n or_o a_o mark_n therein_o direct_v we_o to_o glory_n not_o cause_v and_o procure_v it_o as_o bernard_n say_v they_o be_v orbit_n via_fw-la regni_fw-la non_fw-la causa_fw-la regnandi_fw-la the_o way_n to_o the_o kingdom_n not_o the_o cause_n of_o reign_v there_o vi_o object_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o same_o thing_n whereby_o we_o be_v judge_v but_o we_o be_v judge_v by_o our_o good_a work_n therefore_o justify_v also_o ans._n the_o proposition_n be_v false_a for_o judgement_n be_v a_o act_n of_o god_n declare_v a_o man_n to_o be_v just_a that_o be_v already_o just_a and_o justification_n be_v another_o distinct_a act_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o make_v he_o to_o be_v just_a that_o be_v by_o nature_n unjust_a and_o therefore_o in_o equity_n the_o last_o judgement_n be_v to_o proceed_v by_o work_n because_o they_o be_v the_o fit_a mean_n to_o make_v trial_n of_o every_o man_n cause_n and_o serve_v fit_o to_o declare_v who_o god_n have_v justify_v in_o this_o life_n vii_o object_n wicked_a man_n be_v condemn_v for_o evil_a work_n and_o therefore_o righteous_a man_n be_v justify_v by_o good_a work_n ans._n the_o reason_n hold_v not_o for_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o evil_n and_o good_a work_n a_o evil_a work_n be_v perfect_o evil_a and_o so_o deserve_v damnation_n but_o there_o be_v no_o good_a work_n of_o any_o man_n that_o be_v perfect_o good_a and_o therefore_o can_v justify_v viii_o object_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v a_o work_n and_o by_o it_o we_o be_v justify_v &_o if_o one_o work_n do_v justify_v why_o may_v we_o not_o be_v justify_v by_o all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n ans._n faith_n must_v be_v consider_v two_o way_n first_o as_o a_o work_n quality_n or_o virtue_n second_o as_o a_o instrument_n or_o a_o hand_n reach_v out_o itself_o to_o receive_v christ_n merit_n and_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n not_o as_o it_o be_v a_o work_n virtue_n or_o quality_n but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o instrument_n to_o receive_v and_o apply_v that_o thing_n whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o figurative_a speech_n to_o say_v we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n faith_n consider_v by_o itself_o make_v no_o man_n righteous_a neither_o do_v the_o action_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v to_o apprehend_v justify_v but_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v christ_n obedience_n apprehend_v these_o be_v the_o principal_a reason_n common_o use_v which_o as_o we_o see_v be_v of_o no_o moment_n to_o conclude_v therefore_o we_o hold_v that_o work_n concur_v to_o justification_n and_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v thereby_o as_o by_o sign_n and_o effect_n not_o as_o cause_n for_o both_o the_o beginning_n middle_a and_o accomplishment_n of_o our_o justification_n be_v only_o in_o christ_n and_o hereupon_o john_n say_v if_o any_o man_n be_v already_o justify_v sin_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o make_v our_o good_a work_n mean_n or_o cause_n of_o our_o justification_n be_v to_o make_v every_o man_n a_o saviour_n to_o himself_o the_o v._o point_n of_o merit_n by_o merit_n we_o understand_v any_o thing_n or_o any_o work_n whereby_o god_n favour_n &_o life_n everlasting_a be_v procure_v and_o that_o for_o the_o dignity_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o work_n or_o thing_n do_v or_o a_o good_a work_n do_v bind_v he_o that_o receive_v it_o to_o repay_v the_o like_a our_o consent_n touch_v merit_n we_o consent_v in_o two_o conclusion_n with_o they_o the_o first_o conclusion_n that_o merit_n be_v so_o far_o forth_o necessary_a that_o without_o they_o there_o can_v be_v no_o salvation_n the_o second_o that_o christ_n our_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n be_v the_o root_n and_o fountain_n of_o all_o merit_n the_o dissent_n or_o difference_n the_o popish_a church_n place_v merit_n within_o man_n make_v two_o sort_n thereof_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o person_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o work_n the_o merit_n of_o the_o person_n be_v a_o dignity_n in_o the_o person_n whereby_o it_o be_v worthy_a of_o life_n everlasting_a and_o this_o as_o they_o say_v be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o infant_n die_v after_o baptism_n who_o though_o they_o want_v good_a work_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o void_a of_o this_o kind_n of_o merit_n for_o which_o they_o ●eceive_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o merit_n of_o the_o work_n be_v a_o dignity_n or_o excellency_n in_o the_o work_n whereby_o it_o be_v make_v fit_n and_o enable_v to_o deserve_v life_n everlasting_a for_o the_o doer_n and_o work_v as_o they_o teach_v be_v meritorious_a two_o way_n first_o by_o covenant_n because_o god_n have_v make_v a_o promise_n of_o reward_n unto_o they_o second_o by_o their_o own_o dignity_n for_o christ_n have_v merit_v that_o our_o work_n may_v merit_v and_o this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o their_o doctrine_n from_o it_o we_o dissent_v in_o these_o point_n i._o we_o renounce_v all_o personal_a merit_n that_o be_v all_o merit_n within_o the_o person_n of_o any_o mere_a man_n ii_o and_o we_o renounce_v all_o merit_n of_o work_n that_o be_v all_o merit_n of_o any_o work_n do_v by_o any_o mere_a man_n whatsoever_o and_o the_o true_a merit_n whereby_o we_o look_v to_o attain_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o life_n everlasting_a be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n alone_o who_o be_v the_o storehouse_n of_o all_o our_o merit_n who_o prerogative_n it_o be_v to_o be_v the_o person_n alone_o in_o who_o god_n be_v well_o please_v god_n favour_n be_v of_o infinite_a dignity_n and_o no_o creature_n be_v able_a to_o do_v a_o work_n that_o may_v countervail_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n save_v christ_n alone_o who_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o person_n be_v not_o a_o mere_a man_n but_o god-man_n or_o man-god_n he_o can_v do_v such_o work_n as_o be_v of_o endless_a dignity_n every_o way_n answerable_a to_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o sufficient_a to_o merit_v the_o same_o for_o us._n and_o though_o a_o merit_n or_o meritorious_a work_n agree_v only_o to_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n yet_o be_v it_o make_v we_o by_o imputation_n for_o as_o his_o righteousness_n be_v make_v we_o so_o be_v his_o merit_n depend_v thereon_o but_o his_o righteousness_n be_v make_v we_o by_o imputation_n as_o i_o have_v show_v hence_o arise_v another_o point_n namely_o that_o as_o christ_n righteousness_n be_v make_v we_o real_o by_o imputation_n to_o make_v we_o righteous_a so_o we_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o righteousness_n impute_v to_o we_o do_v merit_n and_o deserve_v life_n everlasting_a and_o this_o be_v our_o doctrine_n in_o a_o word_n the_o papist_n maintain_v the_o merit_n of_o his_o own_o work_n but_o we_o renowce_v they_o all_o and_o rest_v only_o on_o the_o merit_n of_o christ._n and_o that_o our_o doctrine_n be_v truth_n and_o they_o
man_n but_o only_a order_n and_o incline_v it_o without_o any_o constraint_n to_o one_o part_n as_o for_o example_n when_o a_o people_n be_v gather_v together_o to_o hear_v god_n word_n there_o be_v none_o of_o they_o but_o they_o know_v that_o they_o come_v thither_o by_o god_n providence_n &_o in_o that_o respect_n necessary_o yet_o before_o they_o come_v they_o have_v all_o freedom_n and_o liberty_n in_o themselves_o to_o come_v or_o not_o to_o come_v and_o god_n eternal_a counsel_n do_v not_o hinder_v the_o liberty_n of_o our_o will_n in_o come_v or_o not_o come_v nor_o take_v away_o the_o same_o but_o only_o incline_v and_o turn_v they_o to_o the_o choice_n of_o one_o part_n an_o other_o example_n hereof_o we_o may_v have_v in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n who_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o body_n if_o we_o regard_v he_o may_v have_v live_v long_o yet_o by_o the_o eternal_a counsel_n of_o god_n he_o must_v die_v at_o that_o place_n at_o that_o time_n at_o that_o hour_n where_o and_o when_o he_o die_v whereby_o we_o may_v see_v that_o god_n counsel_n do_v not_o hinder_v the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o only_a order_n and_o dispose_v it_o which_o answer_n be_v well_o mark_v we_o shall_v see_v these_o two_o will_v stand_v together_o the_o necessary_a and_o unchangeable_a counsel_n of_o god_n and_o the_o free_a will_n of_o man_n and_o again_o that_o the_o same_o action_n may_v be_v both_o necessary_a and_o contingent_a necessary_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o high_a cause_n the_o counsel_n of_o god_n not_o necessary_a but_o contingent_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o second_o cause_n as_o among_o the_o rest_n the_o will_n of_o man_n three_o some_o will_v yet_o object_v against_o this_o doctrine_n that_o if_o all_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v according_a to_o god_n unchangeable_a decree_n than_o what_o need_v the_o use_v of_o any_o mean_n what_o need_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n and_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n what_o need_v any_o law_n prince_n magistrate_n or_o government_n what_o needs_o walk_v in_o man_n ordinary_a calling_n all_o be_v to_o no_o end_n for_o let_v man_n play_v or_o work_v sleep_n or_o wake_v let_v they_o do_v what_o they_o will_v all_o be_v one_o for_o god_n eternal_a counsel_n must_v needs_o come_v to_o pass_v therefore_o it_o may_v seem_v in_o vain_a for_o man_n to_o busy_v themselves_o about_o such_o thing_n answ._n but_o we_o must_v know_v that_o as_o god_n have_v appoint_v all_o thing_n to_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o his_o eternal_a and_o unchangeable_a counsel_n so_o in_o the_o same_o decree_n he_o have_v together_o set_v down_o the_o mean_n and_o way_n whereby_o he_o will_v have_v the_o same_o thing_n bring_v to_o pass_v for_o these_o two_o must_v never_o be_v sever_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v and_o the_o mean_n whereby_o it_o be_v do_v we_o may_v read_v in_o the_o act_n in_o paul_n dangerous_a voyage_n towards_o rome_n and_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n tell_v paul_n ●_o that_o god_n have_v give_v he_o all_o that_o sail_v with_o he_o in_o the_o ship_n now_o the_o soldier_n and_o mariner_n hear_v this_o may_v reason_v thus_o with_o themselves_o see_v god_n have_v decree_v to_o save_v we_o all_o we_o may_v do_v what_o we_o will_v there_o be_v no_o danger_n for_o we_o shall_v all_o come_v to_o land_n alive_a but_o mark_v what_o paul_n say_v 31._o except_o these_o abide_v in_o the_o ship_n you_o can_v not_o be_v safe_a where_o we_o see_v that_o as_o it_o be_v the_o eternal_a counsel_n of_o god_n to_o save_v paul_n and_o all_o that_o be_v with_o he_o so_o he_o decree_v to_o save_v all_o by_o this_o particular_a mean_n of_o their_o abode_n in_o the_o ship_n king_n ezechias_n be_v restore_v to_o his_o health_n 20._o and_o receive_v from_o god_n a_o promise_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v 15._o year_n add_v to_o his_o day_n and_o the_o promise_n be_v confirm_v by_o sign_n now_o what_o do_v he_o cast_v off_o all_o mean_n no_o but_o as_o he_o be_v prescribe_v so_o he_o apply_v a_o bunch_n of_o dry_a fig_n to_o his_o sore_n and_o use_v still_o his_o ordinary_a diet_n therefore_o it_o be_v gross_a ignorance_n and_o madness_n in_o man_n to_o reason_n so_o against_o god_n decree_n god_n in_o his_o unchangeable_a counsel_n have_v decree_v and_o set_v down_o all_o thing_n how_o they_o shall_v be_v therefore_o i_o will_v use_v no_o mean_n but_o live_v as_o i_o list_v nay_o rather_o we_o must_v say_v the_o contrary_a because_o god_n have_v decree_v this_o thing_n or_o that_o to_o be_v do_v therefore_o i_o will_v use_v the_o mean_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v to_o bring_v the_o same_o to_o pass_v now_o follow_v the_o creation_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o work_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n form_v and_o frame_v his_o creature_n which_o be_v not_o before_o and_o that_o of_o nothing_o the_o point_n to_o be_v know_v concern_v the_o creation_n be_v many_o the_o first_o be_v the_o thing_n by_o which_o god_n do_v begin_v and_o finish_v the_o creation_n and_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o at_o the_o first_o god_n make_v all_o thing_n without_o any_o instrument_n or_o mean_n and_o not_o as_o man_n do_v which_o bring_v to_o pass_v their_o business_n by_o servant_n and_o help_n but_o only_o by_o his_o word_n and_o commandment_n as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v he_o command_v and_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v 13._o in_o the_o beginning_n god_n say_v let_v there_o be_v light_n and_o there_o be_v light_a and_o by_o the_o same_o mean_n be_v the_o creation_n of_o every_o creature_n follow_v the_o very_a power_n of_o the_o word_n &_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v such_o as_o by_o it_o that_o thing_n be_v make_v and_o have_v a_o be_v which_o before_o be_v not_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v what_o word_n this_o be_v by_o which_o god_n be_v say_v to_o make_v all_o thing_n answ._n the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o scripture_n be_v take_v three_o way_n for_o the_o substantial_a word_n for_o the_o sound_a or_o write_a word_n for_o the_o operative_a or_o powerful_a word_n the_o substantial_a word_n be_v the_o second_o person_n beget_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n now_o howsoever_o it_o be_v true_a that_o god_n the_o father_n do_v create_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o word_n that_o be_v by_o his_o son_n yet_o do_v it_o not_o seem_v to_o be_v true_a that_o by_o these_o word_n god_n say_v let_v there_o be_v this_o or_o that_o that_o the_o son_n be_v mean_v for_o that_o word_n which_o god_n give_v out_o in_o the_o creation_n be_v in_o time_n whereas_o the_o son_n be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n before_o all_o time_n and_o again_o it_o be_v a_o word_n common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n equal_o whereas_o the_o son_n be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n only_o furthermore_o it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o it_o be_v any_o sound_a word_n stand_v of_o letter_n and_o syllable_n and_o utter_v to_o the_o creature_n after_o the_o usual_a manner_n of_o man_n that_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o they_o 1.3_o it_o remain_v therefore_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o the_o operative_a word_n which_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o pleasure_n will_n and_o appointment_n of_o god_n and_o be_v more_o powerful_a to_o bring_v a_o thing_n to_o pass_v then_o all_o the_o mean_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o for_o god_n willing_a of_o any_o thing_n be_v his_o effect_n and_o do_v of_o it_o and_o this_o be_v prove_v by_o david_n when_o he_o say_v he_o speak_v the_o word_n and_o they_o be_v make_v he_o command_v and_o they_o be_v create_v hence_o we_o must_v take_v out_o a_o special_a lesson_n needful_a to_o be_v learn_v of_o every_o man_n look_v what_o power_n god_n use_v and_o show_v in_o make_v the_o creature_n when_o they_o be_v not_o the_o same_o power_n he_o both_o can_v and_o will_v show_v forth_o in_o recreate_v and_o redeem_v sinful_a man_n by_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ._n 51.10_o by_o his_o word_n he_o create_v man_n heart_n when_o it_o be_v not_o and_o he_o can_v and_o will_v as_o easy_o create_v in_o we_o all_o new_a heart_n special_o when_o we_o use_v the_o good_a mean_n appoint_v for_o that_o end_n as_o when_o christ_n say_v to_o dead_a lazarus_n 44●_n lazarus_n come_v forth_o he_o arise_v and_o come_v forth_o of_o his_o grave_n though_o bind_v hand_n &_o foot_n so_o when_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o our_o dead_a heart_n by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n we_o shall_v rise_v forth_o of_o the_o grave_n of_o our_o sin_n &_o corruption_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o great_a world_n god_n say_v let_v there_o be_v light_n and_o present_o darkness_n give_v place_n and_o the_o same_o he_o can_v do_v to_o the_o little_a world_n that_o be_v to_o man_n we_o be_v by_o
wise_a from_o he_o but_o only_o permit_v again_o that_o in_o actual_a sin_n the_o motion_n of_o the_o body_n or_o mind_n be_v from_o god_n but_o the_o evilnes_n and_o disorder_n of_o the_o motion_n be_v not_o from_o he_o but_o free_o permit_v to_o be_v do_v by_o other_o as_o for_o example_n in_o the_o act_n of_o murder_n the_o action_n of_o move_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o stir_v the_o several_a joint_n and_o the_o fetch_n of_o the_o blow_n whereby_o the_o man_n be_v slay_v be_v from_o god_n 17.28_o for_o in_o he_o we_o live_v move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v but_o the_o dispose_n and_o apply_v of_o all_o these_o action_n to_o this_o end_n that_o our_o neighour_n life_n may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o we_o thereby_o take_v revenge_n upon_o he_o be_v not_o from_o god_n but_o from_o the_o wicked_a will_n of_o man_n and_o the_o devil_n god_n second_o action_n in_o the_o government_n of_o sin_n be_v after_o the_o just_a permission_n of_o it_o partly_o to_o restrain_v it_o more_o or_o less_o according_a to_o his_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n and_o partly_o to_o dispose_v and_o turn_v it_o against_o the_o nature_n thereof_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o own_o name_n to_o the_o punishment_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o to_o the_o correct_v &_o chastisement_n of_o his_o elect_a as_o for_o the_o second_o kind_n of_o evil_n call_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v the_o execution_n of_o justice_n and_o have_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o and_o in_o this_o respect_n esai_n say_v 3_o that_o god_n creat_v evil_a and_o amos_n that_o there_o be_v no_o evil_a in_o the_o city_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o do_v and_o god_n as_o a_o most_o just_a judge_n may_v punish_v sin_n by_o sin_n himself_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n free_a from_o all_o sin_n and_o thus_o the_o place_n must_v be_v understand_v in_o which_o it_o be_v say_v 22.22_o that_o god_n give_v king_n in_o his_o wrath_n harden_v the_o heart_n blind_v the_o eye_n mingle_v the_o spirit_n of_o error_n give_v up_o man_n to_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n send_v strange_a illusion_n to_o believe_v lie_n send_v evil_a spirit_n give_v they_o commandment_n to_o hurt_v and_o leave_v to_o deceive_v etc._n etc._n thus_o have_v see_v in_o what_o manner_n god_n govern_v all_o thing_n let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o mean_n of_o government_n sometime_o god_n work_v without_o mean_n thus_o he_o create_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o beginning_n and_o he_o make_v tree_n and_o plant_n to_o grow_v and_o flourish_v without_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o sun_n or_o rain_n sometime_o he_o govern_v according_a to_o the_o usual_a course_n and_o order_n of_o nature_n as_o when_o he_o preserve_v our_o life_n by_o meat_n and_o drink_v yet_o so_o as_o he_o can_v and_o do_v most_o free_o order_v all_o thing_n by_o mean_n either_o above_o nature_n or_o against_o nature_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v good_a unto_o he_o as_o when_o he_o cause_v the_o sun_n to_o stand_v in_o the_o firmament_n and_o to_o go_v back_o in_o achas_n dial_n 9_o when_o he_o cause_v the_o fire_n not_o to_o burn_v the_o three_o child_n when_o he_o keep_v back_o dew_n and_o rain_v three_o year_n in_o israel_n when_o he_o make_v water_n to_o flow_v out_o of_o the_o rock_n when_o he_o cause_v elias_n cloak_n to_o divide_v the_o water_n of_o jordan_z when_o he_o cause_v iron_n to_o swim_v when_o he_o preserve_v jonas_n alive_a three_o day_n and_o three_o night_n in_o the_o whale_n belly_n when_o he_o cure_v disease_n by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n incurable_a as_o the_o leprosy_n of_o naaman_n the_o issue_n of_o blood_n and_o blindness_n etc._n etc._n among_o all_o the_o mean_n which_o god_n use_v the_o special_a be_v the_o reasonable_a creature_n which_o be_v no_o passive_a instrument_n as_o the_o tool_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o workman_n but_o active_a because_o as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o god_n so_o again_o be_v endue_v with_o will_n and_o reason_n they_o move_v themselves_o and_o such_o instrument_n be_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n evil_a as_o wicked_a man_n and_o angel_n and_o these_o he_o use_v to_o do_v his_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n even_o then_o when_o they_o do_v least_o of_o all_o obey_v he_o and_o consider_v that_o the_o sin_v instrument_n which_o be_v move_v by_o god_n do_v also_o move_v itself_o free_o without_o any_o constraint_n on_o god_n part_n god_n himself_o be_v free_a from_o all_o blame_n when_o the_o instrument_n be_v blameworthy_a in_o direct_v the_o instrument_n god_n sin_v not_o the_o action_n indeed_o be_v of_o he_o but_o the_o defect_n of_o the_o action_n from_o the_o instrument_n which_o be_v corrupt_a can_v itself_o do_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v corrupt_a god_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n by_o it_o bring_v that_o to_o pass_v which_o be_v very_o good_a the_o whole_a cause_n of_o sin_n be_v in_o satan_n and_o in_o we_o as_o for_o god_n he_o put_v no_o wickedness_n into_o we_o but_o the_o evil_n which_o he_o find_v in_o we_o he_o move_v that_o be_v order_n and_o govern_v and_o bend_v it_o by_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n when_o and_o in_o what_o manner_n it_o please_v he_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n the_o evil_a instrument_n not_o know_v so_o much_o nay_o intend_v asleep_o far_o other_o end_n as_o in_o the_o mill_n the_o horse_n blindfolded_z go_v forward_o and_o perceive_v nothing_o but_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o ordinary_a way_n whereas_o the_o miller_n himself_o whip_v he_o and_o stir_v he_o forward_o for_o another_o end_n namely_o for_o the_o grind_n of_o corn_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o we_o must_v hold_v touch_v god_n providence_n over_o wicked_a man_n and_o angel_n and_o it_o stand●s_v with_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o whole_a bible_n josephs_n brethren_n sell_v he_o into_o egypt_n very_o wicked_o even_o in_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o own_o conscience_n yet_o joseph_n have_v respect_n to_o the_o counsel_n and_o work_v of_o god_n which_o he_o perform_v by_o his_o brethren_n say_v that_o the_o lord_n send_v he_o thither_o 4.5_o and_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v that_o herod_n and_o pontius_n pilate_n do_v nothing_o in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o which_o the_o hand_n &_o counsel_n of_o god_n have_v determine_v to_o be_v do_v 4.28_o because_o though_o they_o wicked_o intend_v nothing_o but_o to_o show_v their_o malice_n and_o hatred_n in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n yet_o god_n propound_v a_o further_a matter_n by_o they_o then_o ever_o they_o dream_v of_o show_v forth_o his_o endless_a mercy_n to_o man_n in_o the_o work_n of_o redemption_n on_o this_o manner_n must_v all_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v understand_v in_o which_o it_o be_v say_v 11.4_o that_o god_n give_v the_o wife_n of_o david_n to_o absalon_n that_o god_n move_v david_n to_o number_v the_o people_n that_o he_o command_v shemei_n to_o rail_v on_o david_n that_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n be_v his_o sanctify_a one_o that_o the_o revolt_n of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n be_v do_v by_o god_n etc._n etc._n by_o all_o these_o example_n it_o appear_v that_o we_o must_v not_o sever_v god_n permission_n from_o his_o will_n or_o decree_n and_o that_o we_o must_v put_v difference_n between_o the_o evil_a work_n of_o man_n and_o the_o good_a work_n of_o god_n which_o he_o do_v by_o man_n &_o the_o whole_a matter_n may_v yet_o be_v more_o clear_o perceive_v by_o this_o comparison_n a_o thief_n at_o the_o day_n of_o assize_n be_v condemn_v &_o the_o magistrate_n appoint_v he_o to_o be_v execute_v the_o hangman_n owe_v a_o grudge_n to_o the_o malefactor_n use_v he_o hardly_o &_o prolong_v his_o punishment_n long_o than_o he_o shall_v now_o the_o magistrate_n and_o the_o hangman_n do_v both_o one_o and_o the_o same_o work_n yet_o the_o hangman_n for_o his_o part_n be_v a_o murderer_n the_o magistrate_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n no_o murderer_n but_o a_o just_a judge_n put_v justice_n in_o execution_n by_o the_o hangman_n so_o god_n though_o he_o use_v evil_a instrument_n yet_o be_v he_o free_a from_o the_o evil_a of_o the_o instrument_n and_o further_o we_o must_v here_o mark_v the_o difference_n which_o must_v be_v make_v in_o god_n use_v of_o all_o kind_n of_o instrument_n when_o he_o use_v good_a creature_n as_o angel_n he_o work_v his_o will_v not_o only_o by_o they_o but_o also_o in_o they_o because_o he_o inspire_v they_o and_o guide_v they_o by_o his_o spirit_n so_o as_o they_o shall_v will_n and_o do_v that_o which_o he_o will_v and_o intend_v as_o for_o evil_a instrument_n he_o work_v by_o they_o only_o and_o not_o in_o they_o because_o he_o hold_v back_o his_o grace_n from_o they_o and_o leave_v they_o to_o themselves_o to_o put_v in_o
feel_v themselves_o forlorn_a and_o utter_o reject_v of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o sense_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o flesh_n yet_o by_o faith_n they_o can_v apprehend_v his_o hide_a mercy_n and_o behold_v it_o a_o far_o off_o in_o the_o glass_n of_o his_o promise_n and_o so_o they_o do_v often_o show_v contrary_a affection_n in_o their_o prayer_n as_o david_n do_v 32.28_o jacob_n when_o he_o wrestle_v with_o the_o angel_n for_o life_n and_o death_n never_o give_v over_o and_o when_o he_o be_v foil_v he_o will_v not_o cease_v before_o the_o lord_n have_v bless_v he_o this_o his_o wrestle_a be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o conflict_n which_o the_o faithful_a be_v to_o have_v with_o the_o lord_n himself_o who_o use_v to_o bring_v his_o own_o child_n as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o field_n and_o he_o assail_v they_o with_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o with_o the_o other_o he_o hold_v they_o up_o that_o so_o he_o may_v prove_v and_o exercise_v their_o faith_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o church_n 130._o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o jacob_n a_o example_n may_v be_v have_v in_o the_o woman_n of_o canaan_n 25,26,27_o first_o our_o saviour_n christ_n give_v her_o faith_n and_o by_o that_o faith_n she_o be_v move_v to_o seek_v to_o he_o but_o when_o she_o be_v once_o come_v to_o he_o he_o give_v she_o three_o repulse_n first_o by_o say_v nothing_o second_o by_o deny_v she_o three_o by_o call_v her_o dog_n thus_o christ_n in_o appearance_n make_v show_v as_o though_o he_o will_v never_o have_v grant_v her_o request_n but_o she_o at_o every_o repulse_n be_v more_o instant_a cry_v more_o earnest_o unto_o he_o and_o she_o plain_o oppose_v herself_o to_o he_o &_o will_v take_v no_o denial_n for_o such_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o true_a faith_n wherefore_o the_o faithful_a when_o they_o feel_v themselves_o overwhelm_v with_o sin_n turmoil_v with_o conflict_n of_o satan_n when_o they_o feel_v the_o anger_n of_o god_n offend_v with_o they_o yet_o they_o can_v even_o then_o lift_v up_o their_o eye_n lid_n and_o give_v a_o glimpse_n at_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n jesus_n christ_n and_o can_v fling_v themselves_o into_o the_o arm_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o catch_v hold_v of_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n buffet_n they_o and_o kiss_v it_o lx._n chri●tian_n by_o these_o temptation_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o a_o christian_n though_o he_o can_v not_o fall_v final_o from_o christ_n yet_o he_o may_v fall_v very_o dangerous_o from_o his_o former_a estate_n first_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n may_v be_v by_o his_o default_n lessen_v in_o he_o else_o paul_n will_v not_o have_v give_v out_o these_o exhortation_n 5.19_o quench_v not_o the_o spirit_n 4.30_o grieve_v not_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n by_o who_o you_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n second_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n may_v be_v bury_v in_o he_o and_o cover_v for_o a_o time_n so_o that_o he_o may_v be_v like_o a_o man_n in_o a_o trance_n who_o both_o by_o his_o own_o sense_n and_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o physician_n be_v take_v for_o dead_a this_o be_v the_o estate_n of_o peter_n who_o though_o he_o confess_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a lord_n 16,26,70_o yet_o he_o deny_v he_o and_o forswear_v he_o at_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o damsel_n three_o he_o may_v fall_v again_o into_o the_o same_o sin_n after_o repentance_n indeed_o this_o be_v a_o dangerous_a case_n yet_o it_o may_v befall_v a_o true_a christian_n otherwise_o when_o as_o the_o israelite_n god_n people_n have_v fall_v away_o from_o he_o by_o their_o sin_n and_o idolatry_n he_o will_v not_o still_o have_v offer_v they_o mercy_n 18_o as_o he_o do_v by_o his_o prophet_n and_o 20._o paul_n pray_v the_o corinthian_n in_o christ_n stead_n that_o they_o will_v be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n who_o nevertheless_o be_v before_o reconcile_v to_o god_n four_o he_o may_v commit_v a_o sin_n of_o presumption_n which_o be_v a_o fearful_a sin_n be_v do_v witting_o of_o knowledge_n and_o willing_o and_o with_o some_o wilfulness_n therefore_o david_n pray_v 19.13_o keep_v thy_o servant_n from_o presumptuous_a sin_n and_o to_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o it_o he_o pray_v further_a let_v they_o not_o have_v dominion_n over_o i_o last_o he_o may_v fall_v into_o despair_n of_o god_n mercy_n for_o a_o time_n and_o this_o be_v a_o dangerous_a sin_n for_o he_o which_o despair_n make_v all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n to_o be_v false_a and_o this_o sin_n of_o all_o other_o be_v most_o contrary_a to_o true_a save_a faith_n in_o this_o estate_n be_v david_n when_o be_v in_o trouble_n he_o say_v 77.11_o this_o be_v my_o death_n and_o paul_n show_v that_o the_o incestuous_a man_n may_v have_v fall_v into_o desperation_n 2.2_o when_o he_o say_v comfort_v he_o lest_o he_o be_v swallow_v up_o of_o overmuch_o heaviness_n and_o it_o must_v be_v remember_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n err_v in_o this_o that_o she_o teach_v desperation_n to_o be_v a_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o blasphemy_n speak_v against_o the_o know_a truth_n of_o god_n word_n or_o a_o denial_n of_o christ_n of_o a_o wilful_a and_o obstinate_a malice_n but_o desperation_n may_v arise_v through_o ignorance_n of_o a_o man_n own_o estate_n through_o horror_n of_o conscience_n for_o sin_n through_o a_o often_o relapse_n into_o some_o sin_n through_o the_o overdeepe_a consideration_n of_o a_o man_n own_o unworthines_n last_o by_o abjuration_n of_o the_o truth_n through_o compulsion_n and_o fear_n ●pira_fw-la this_o befall_v francis_n spira_n who_o after_o his_o apostasy_n despair_v yet_o they_o be_v much_o oversee_v that_o write_v of_o he_o as_o a_o damn_a creature_n for_o first_o who_o can_v tell_v whether_o he_o despair_v final_o or_o no._n second_o in_o the_o very_a midst_n of_o his_o desperation_n he_o complain_v of_o the_o hardness_n of_o his_o heart_n which_o make_v he_o that_o he_o can_v not_o pray_v no_o doubt_n than_o he_o feel_v his_o hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o the_o feel_n of_o corruption_n in_o the_o heart_n be_v by_o some_o contrary_a grace_n so_o that_o we_o may_v convenient_o think_v that_o he_o be_v not_o quite_o bereave_v of_o all_o goodness_n though_o he_o never_o feel_v it_o then_o nor_o show_v it_o to_o the_o beholder_n lxi_o the_o cause_n why_o a_o christian_a can_v quite_o fall_v away_o from_o grace_n be_v this_o corroboration_n after_o that_o he_o be_v sanctify_v he_o receive_v from_o god_n another_o special_a grace_n which_o may_v be_v call_v corroboration_n for_o he_o have_v in_o he_o not_o only_o the_o sanctify_a but_o also_o the_o strengthen_v power_n of_o christ._n therefore_o paul_n pray_v for_o the_o ephesian_n 16._o that_o they_o may_v be_v strengthen_v in_o the_o inner_a man_n for_o the_o colossian_n 1.9_o that_o they_o may_v be_v strengthen_v with_o the_o glorious_a power_n of_o christ._n and_o of_o himself_o he_o say_v 13._o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v all_o thing_n through_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n that_o strengthen_v he_o 103._o david_n say_v that_o god_n renew_v they_o that_o fear_v he_o as_o the_o eagle_n renew_v her_o decay_a strength_n patience_n from_o hence_o as_o from_o a_o special_a cause_n arise_v patience_n and_o perseverance_n unto_o the_o end_n perseverance_n for_o when_o a_o man_n be_v support_v by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n he_o may_v be_v able_a to_o bear_v many_o cross_n patient_o with_o a_o content_a mind_n and_o persevere_v in_o bear_v of_o it_o how_o long_o soever_o the_o cross_n endure_v lxii_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o estate_n of_o a_o christian_a in_o this_o life_n now_o i_o will_v add_v some_o reason_n in_o the_o way_n of_o persuasion_n to_o all_o man_n christianity_n but_o especial_o to_o worldling_n and_o to_o loose_a professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o will_v utter_o deny_v themselves_o 5.17_o and_o use_v all_o mean_n to_o become_v true_a christian_n by_o be_v make_v new_a creature_n in_o christ_n and_o ●0_n by_o lead_v such_o a_o life_n as_o may_v adorn_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ._n my_o first_o reason_n be_v this_o the_o man_n that_o live_v in_o this_o world_n not_o be_v a_o true_a christian_a be_v far_o more_o vile_a than_o the_o base_a creature_n of_o all_o even_o the_o dog_n or_o toad_n for_o first_o he_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o filthy_a dunghill_n of_o all_o abomination_n and_o uncleanness_n the_o 8.20_o stink_n whereof_o have_v infect_v heaven_n &_o earth_n &_o no_o perfume_n can_v ever_o delay_v it_o in_o the_o nostril_n of_o god_n but_o only_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n be_v 5.2_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o sweet_a smell_a savour_n to_o god_n we_o make_v it_o very_o dainty_a to_o come_v near_o a_o lazar_n man_n that_o
another_o law_n in_o my_o member_n rebel_a against_o the_o law_n of_o my_o mind_n and_o lead_v i_o captive_a to_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v in_o my_o member_n o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o this_o body_n of_o death_n the_o second_o manner_n of_o god_n forsake_v his_o elect_n be_v when_o he_o hide_v his_o grace_n for_o a_o time_n not_o by_o take_v they_o quite_o away_o but_o by_o cover_v they_o and_o by_o remove_v all_o sense_n and_o feel_n of_o they_o and_o in_o this_o case_n they_o be_v like_o the_o tree_n in_o the_o winter_n season_n that_o be_v beat_v with_o wind_n and_o weather_n bear_v neither_o leaf_n nor_o fruit_n but_o look_v as_o though_o they_o be_v rot_v and_o dead_a because_o the_o sap_n do_v not_o spread_v itself_o but_o lie_v hide_v in_o the_o root_n david_n often_o be_v in_o this_o case_n as_o namely_o when_o he_o say_v 77.78_o will_v the_o lord_n absent_v himself_o for_o ever_o and_o will_v he_o show_v no_o more_o favour_n be_v his_o mercy_n clean_o go_v for_o ever_o do_v his_o promise_n fail_v for_o evermore_o have_v god_n forget_v to_o be_v merciful_a have_v he_o shut_v up_o his_o tender_a mercy_n in_o displeasure_n selah_n contrary_n this_o come_v to_o pass_v because_o the_o lord_n very_o often_o in_o and_o by_o one_o contrary_a work_n another_o clay_n and_o spittle_n temper_v together_o in_o reason_n shall_v put_v out_o a_o man_n eye_n but_o christ_n use_v it_o as_o a_o mean_n to_o give_v sight_n to_o the_o blind_a water_n in_o reason_n shall_v put_v out_o fire_n but_o elias_n when_o he_o will_v show_v that_o jehova_n be_v the_o true_a god_n pour_v water_n on_o his_o sacrifice_n and_o fill_v a_o trench_n therewith_o to_o make_v the_o sacrifice_n burn_fw-mi the_o like_a appear_v in_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n to_o salvation_n a_o man_n that_o have_v live_v in_o security_n by_o god_n goodness_n have_v his_o eye_n open_v to_o see_v his_o sin_n and_o his_o heart_n touch_v to_o feel_v the_o huge_a and_o loathsome_a burden_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o to_o bewail_v his_o wretched_a estate_n with_o bitterness_n of_o heart_n hereupon_o he_o present_o think_v that_o god_n will_v make_v he_o a_o firebrand_n of_o hell_n whereas_o indeed_o the_o lord_n be_v now_o about_o to_o work_v and_o frame_v in_o his_o heart_n sanctification_n and_o sound_a repentance_n never_o to_o be_v repent_v of_o the_o man_n which_o have_v have_v some_o good_a persuasion_n of_o god_n favour_n in_o christ_n come_v afterward_o upon_o many_o occasion_n to_o be_v trouble_v and_o to_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o distrustfulnes_n &_o grievous_a doubt_n of_o his_o salvation_n so_o as_o he_o judge_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v but_o a_o hypocrite_n in_o former_a time_n and_o for_o the_o time_n present_a a_o castaway_n but_o indeed_o hereby_o the_o lord_n exercise_v fashion_v and_o increase_v his_o weak_a faith_n in_o one_o word_n mark_v this_o point_n that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n peculiar_a to_o the_o elect_a be_v begin_v increase_v and_o make_v manifest_a in_o or_o by_o their_o contrary_n a_o man_n in_o this_o desertion_n cap_n discern_v no_o difference_n between_o himself_o and_o a_o castaway_n and_o the_o rather_o if_o with_o this_o desertion_n be_v join_v a_o feel_n of_o god_n anger_n for_o than_o arise_v the_o bitter_a temptation_n that_o ever_o befall_v the_o poor_a soul_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n and_o that_o be_v a_o wrestle_a and_o struggle_v in_o spirit_n and_o conscience_n not_o with_o the_o motion_n of_o a_o rebel_a flesh_n nor_o the_o accusation_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o be_v oftentimes_o very_o irksome_a and_o terrible_a but_o against_o the_o wrath_n of_o a_o revenge_a god_n this_o hide_a and_o spiritual_a temptation_n more_o torment_v the_o spirit_n of_o man_n than_o all_o the_o rack_n or_o gibbet_n in_o the_o world_n can_v do_v and_o it_o have_v his_o fit_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o ague_n in_o which_o even_a god_n own_o servant_n overcarry_v with_o sorrow_n may_v blaspheme_v god_n and_o cry_v out_o that_o they_o be_v damn_v job_n be_v in_o this_o estate_n as_o he_o testify_v 22.3.4_o oh_o that_o my_o grief_n be_v weigh_v say_v he_o and_o my_o misery_n be_v lay_v together_o in_o the_o balance_n for_o it_o will_v be_v heavy_a than_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n therefore_o my_o word_n be_v swallow_v up_o for_o the_o arrow_n of_o the_o almighty_a be_v in_o i_o the_o venom_n thereof_o do_v drink_v up_o my_o spirit_n and_o the_o terror_n of_o god_n fight_v against_o i_o and_o further_o he_o complain_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v 13.24_o his_o enemy_n that_o he_o write_v bitter_a thing_n against_o he_o and_o that_o he_o 16.12_o set_v he_o as_o a_o but_o to_o shoot_v at_o this_o be_v david_n temptation_n when_o he_o say_v 3,4_o o_o lord_n rebuke_v i_o not_o in_o thy_o anger_n neither_o chastise_v i_o in_o thy_o wrath_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o o_o lord_n for_o i_o be_o weak_a o_o lord_n heal_v i_o for_o my_o bone_n be_v vex_v my_o soul_n be_v also_o sore_o trouble_v but_o lord_n how_o long_o will_v thou_o delay_v return_v o_o lord_n deliver_v my_o soul_n save_v i_o for_o thy_o mercy_n sake_n hence_o it_o follow_v that_o when_o any_o that_o have_v be_v a_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v despair_v at_o his_o end_n that_o man_n be_v to_o leave_v secret_a judgement_n to_o god_n and_o charitable_o to_o judge_v the_o best_a of_o they_o for_o example_n death_n one_o master_n chamber_n at_o leicester_n of_o late_a in_o his_o sickness_n grievous_o despair_v and_o cry_v out_o that_o he_o be_v damn_v and_o after_o die_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o for_o any_o to_o note_v he_o with_o the_o black_a mark_n of_o a_o reprobate_n one_o thing_n which_o he_o speak_v in_o his_o extremity_n o_o that_o i_o have_v but_o one_o drop_n of_o faith_n must_v move_v all_o man_n to_o conceive_v well_o of_o he_o for_o by_o this_o it_o seem_v that_o he_o have_v a_o heart_n which_o desire_v to_o repent_v &_o believe_v &_o therefore_o a_o repentant_a and_o believe_a heart_n indeed_o for_o god_n at_o all_o time_n but_o especial_o in_o temptation_n of_o his_o great_a mercy_n accept_v the_o will_n for_o the_o deed_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v regard_v that_o he_o say_v he_o be_v damn_v for_o man_n in_o such_o case_n speak_v not_o as_o they_o be_v but_o as_o they_o feel_v themselves_o to_o be_v yea_o to_o go_v further_o when_o a_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v make_v away_o himself_o though_o it_o be_v a_o fearful_a case_n yet_o still_o the_o same_o opinion_n must_v be_v carry_v first_o god_n judgement_n be_v very_o secret_a second_o they_o may_v repent_v in_o the_o very_a agony_n for_o any_o thing_n we_o know_v three_o none_o be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v the_o bottomless_a depth_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o mercy_n which_o be_v in_o christ._n thus_o much_o of_o the_o manner_n which_o god_n use_v in_o forsake_v his_o elect_a now_o follow_v the_o kind_n of_o desertion_n which_o be_v two_o desertion_n in_o punishment_n desertion_n in_o sin_n desertion_n in_o punishment_n be_v when_o god_n defer_v either_o to_o mitigate_v or_o to_o remove_v the_o cross_n and_o chastisement_n which_o he_o have_v lay_v upon_o his_o child_n this_o befall_v christ_n on_o the_o cross_n 46._o my_o god_n say_v he_o my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o this_o be_v the_o complaint_n of_o gedeon_n do_v not_o the_o lord_n bring_v we_o out_o of_o egypt_n but_o now_o the_o lord_n have_v forsake_v we_o and_o deliver_v we_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o midianite_n judg._n 6._o 13._o septemb_n master_n robert_n glover_n martyr_n at_o coventrie_n after_o he_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o be_v now_o at_o the_o point_n to_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o the_o world_n it_o so_o happen_v that_o two_o or_o three_o day_n before_o his_o death_n his_o heart_n be_v lumpish_a and_o desolate_a of_o all_o spiritual_a consolation_n feel_v in_o himself_o no_o aptness_n nor_o willingness_n but_o rather_o a_o heaviness_n and_o dulness_n of_o spirit_n full_a of_o much_o discomfort_n to_o bear_v the_o bitter_a cross_n of_o martyrdom_n ready_a now_o to_o be_v lay_v upon_o he_o whereupon_o he_o fear_v in_o himself_o lest_o the_o lord_n have_v withdraw_v his_o wont_a favour_n from_o he_o make_v his_o moan_n to_o one_o austin_n his_o friend_n signify_v unto_o he_o how_o earnest_o he_o have_v pray_v day_n &_o night_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o yet_o can_v receive_v no_o motion_n nor_o sense_n of_o any_o comfort_n from_o he_o unto_o who_o the_o say_a austin_n answer_v again_o will_v he_o patient_o to_o wait_v the_o lord_n pleasure_n and_o howesoever_o his_o present_a feeling_n be_v yet_o see_v his_o cause_n be_v just_a and_o true_a he_o
and_o this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o text_n which_o speak_v not_o of_o justification_n by_o faith_n but_o only_o of_o the_o practice_n of_o common_a duty_n which_o faith_n put_v in_o execution_n by_o the_o help_n of_o love_n iii_o reason_n faith_n be_v never_o alone_a therefore_o it_o do_v not_o justify_v alone_o ans._n the_o reason_n be_v naught_o and_o they_o may_v as_o well_o dispute_v thus_o the_o eye_n be_v never_o alone_o from_o the_o head_n and_o therefore_o it_o see_v not_o alone_o which_o be_v absurd_a and_o though_o in_o regard_n of_o substance_n the_o eye_n be_v never_o alone_a yet_o in_o regard_n of_o see_v it_o be_v alone_o and_o so_o though_o faith_n subsist_v not_o without_o love_n and_o hope_n and_o other_o grace_n of_o god_n yet_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o act_n of_o justification_n it_o be_v alone_o without_o they_o al._n iv._o reason_n if_o faith_n alone_o do_v justify_v than_o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n alone_o but_o we_o be_v not_o save_v by_o faith_n alone_o and_o therefore_o not_o justify_v by_o faith_n alone_o ans._n the_o proposition_n be_v false_a for_o more_o thing_n be_v requisite_a to_o the_o main_a end_n then_o to_o the_o subordinate_a mean_n and_o the_o assumption_n be_v false_a for_o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n alone_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v a_o instrument_n apprehend_v christ_n for_o our_o salvation_n v._o reason_n we_o be_v save_v by_o hope_n therefore_o not_o by_o faith_n alone_o ans._n we_o be_v save_v by_o hope_n not_o because_o it_o be_v any_o cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n paul_n meaning_n be_v only_o this_o that_o we_o have_v not_o salvation_n as_o yet_o in_o possession_n but_o wait_v patient_o for_o it_o in_o time_n to_o come_v to_o be_v possess_v of_o we_o expect_v the_o time_n of_o our_o full_a deliverance_n that_o be_v all_o that_o can_v just_o be_v gather_v hence_o now_o the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o teach_v on_o the_o contrary_n be_v that_o a_o sinner_n be_v justify_v before_o god_n by_o faith_n yea_o by_o faith_n alone_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o nothing_o within_o man_n and_o nothing_o that_o man_n can_v do_v either_o by_o nature_n or_o by_o grace_n concur_v to_o the_o act_n of_o justification_n before_o god_n as_o any_o cause_n thereof_o either_o efficient_a material_a formal_a or_o final_a but_o faith_n alone_o all_o other_o gift_n &_o grace_n as_o hope_v love_n the_o fear_n of_o god_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o sign_n thereof_o &_o consequent_n of_o faith_n nothing_o in_o man_n concur_v as_o any_o cause_n to_o this_o work_n but_o by_o faith_n alone_o and_o faith_n itself_o be_v no_o principal_a but_o only_o a_o instrumental_a cause_n whereby_o we_o receive_v apprehend_v and_o apply_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n for_o our_o justification_n reason_n i._n joh._n 3.14,15_o as_o moses_n lift_v up_o the_o serpent_n in_o the_o wilderness_n so_o must_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v lift_v up_o that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n in_o these_o word_n christ_n make_v a_o comparison_n on_o this_o manner_n when_o any_o one_o of_o the_o israelite_n be_v sting_v to_o death_n by_o fiery_a serpent_n his_o cure_n be_v not_o by_o any_o physic_n surgery_n but_o only_o by_o the_o cast_n of_o his_o eye_n up_o to_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n which_o moses_n have_v erect_v by_o god_n commandment_n even_o so_o in_o the_o cure_n of_o our_o soul_n when_o we_o be_v sting_v to_o death_n by_o sin_n there_o be_v nothing_o require_v within_o we_o for_o our_o recovery_n but_o only_o that_o we_o cast_v up_o and_o fix_v the_o eye_n of_o our_o faith_n on_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n reason_n ii_o the_o exclusive_a form_n of_o speech_n use_v in_o scripture_n prove_v thus_o much_o we_o be_v justify_v free_o not_o of_o the_o law_n not_o by_o the_o law_n without_o the_o law_n without_o work_n not_o of_o work_n not_o according_a to_o work_n not_o of_o we_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o faith_n gal._n 2.16_o all_o boast_v exclude_v only_o believe_v luk._n 8.50_o these_o distinction_n whereby_o work_n and_o the_o law_n be_v exclude_v in_o the_o work●_n of_o justification_n do_v include_v thus_o much_o that_o faith_n alone_o do_v justify_v reason_n iii_o very_a reason_n may_v teach_v thus_o much_o for_o no_o gift_n in_o man_n be_v apt_a &_o fit_a as_o a_o spiritual_a hand_n to_o receive_v &_o apply_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n unto_o a_o sinner_n but_o faith_n indeed_o love_n hope_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o repentance_n have_v their_o several_a use_n in_o man_n but_o none_o serve_v for_o this_o end_n to_o apprehend_v christ_n and_o his_o merit_n none_o of_o they_o all_o have_v this_o receive_v property_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o man_n that_o justify_v as_o a_o cause_n but_o faith_n alone_o reason_n iv._n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n ambr._n on_o rom._n 4._o they_o be_v bless_v to_o who_o without_o any_o labour_n or_o work_v do_v iniquity_n be_v remit_v and_o sin_n cover_v no_o work_n or_o repentance_n require_v of_o they_o but_o only_o that_o they_o believe_v and_o cap._n 3._o neither_o work_v any_o thing_n nor_o requite_v the_o like_a be_v they_o justify_v by_o faith_n alone_o through_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o 1._o cor._n 1._o this_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o christ_n shall_v be_v save_v without_o any_o work_n by_o faith_n alone_o free_o receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n 4●_n augustine_n there_o be_v one_o propitiation_n for_o all_o sin_n to_o believe_v in_o christ._n hesyc_a on_o levit._n lib._n 1._o c._n 2._o grace_n which_o be_v of_o mercy_n be_v apprehend_v by_o faith_n alone_o and_o not_o of_o work_n bernard_n 22._o whosoever_o be_v prick_v for_o his_o sin_n and_o thirst_v after_o righteousness_n let_v he_o believe_v in_o thou_o who_o justify_v the_o sinner_n and_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n alone_o he_o shall_v have_v peace_n with_o god_n chrysost._n on_o gal._n 3._o they_o say_v he_o which_o rest_v on_o faith_n alone●_n be_v accurse_v but_o paul_n show_v that_o he_o be_v bless_v which_o rest_v on_o faith_n alone_o basil._n de_fw-fr humil._n let_v man_n acknowledge_v himself_o to_o want_v true_a justice_n and_o that_o he_o be_v justify_v only_o by_o faith_n in_o christ._n origen_n on_o c._n 3._o rom._n we_o think_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o he_o say_v justification_n by_o faith_n alone_o suffice_v so_o as_o a_o man_n only_o believe_v may_v be_v justify_v and_o therefore_o it_o lie_v upon_o we_o to_o search_v who_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n and_o for_o a_o example_n i_o think_v upon_o the_o thief_n who_o be_v crucify_v with_o christ_n cry_v unto_o he_o lord_n remember_v i_o when_o thou_o come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n and_o there_o be_v no_o other_o good_a work_n of_o his_o mention_v in_o the_o gospel_n but_o for_o this_o alone_a faith_n jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o this_o night_n thou_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n iii_o difference_n the_o three_o difference_n about_o justification_n be_v concern_v this_o point_n namely_o how_o farforth_o good_a work_n be_v require_v thereto_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o justification_n the_o first_o and_o the_o second_o as_o i_o have_v say_v the_o first_o be_v when_o one_o of_o a_o evil_a man_n be_v make_v a_o good_a man_n and_o in_o this_o work_n be_v whole_o exclude_v it_o be_v whole_o of_o grace_n the_o second_o be_v when_o a_o man_n of_o a_o just_a man_n be_v make_v more_o just_a and_o this_o they_o will_v have_v to_o proceed_v from_o work_n of_o grace_n for_o say_v they_o as_o a_o man_n when_o he_o be_v once_o bear_v can_v by_o eat_v and_o drink_v make_v himself_o a_o big_a man_n though_o he_o can_v not_o at_o the_o first_o make_v himself_o a_o man_n even_o so_o a_o sinner_n have_v his_o first_o justification_n may_v afterward_o by_o grace_n make_v himself_o more_o just_a therefore_o they_o hold_v these_o two_o thing_n i._o that_o good_a work_n be_v meritorious_a cause_n of_o the_o second_o justification_n which_o they_o term_v actual_a ii_o that_o good_a work_n be_v mean_n to_o increase_v the_o first_o justification_n which_o they_o call_v habitual_a now_o let_v we_o see_v how_o farforth_o we_o must_v join_v with_o they_o in_o this_o point_n our_o consent_n therefore_o stand_v in_o three_o conclusion_n i._o that_o good_a work_n do_v by_o they_o that_o be_v justify_v do_v please_v god_n and_o be_v approve_v of_o he_o and_o therefore_o have_v a_o reward_n ii_o good_a work_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n two_o
the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n but_o now_o in_o the_o end_n he_o have_v appear_v once_o to_o put_v away_o sin_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o himself_o and_o v_o 22._o without_o shed_v of_o blood_n be_v no_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o these_o word_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o scripture_n never_o know_v the_o twofold_a manner_n of_o sacrifice_v of_o christ._n and_o every_o distinction_n in_o divinity_n not_o found_v in_o the_o write_a word_n be_v but_o a_o forgery_n of_o man_n brain_n and_o this_o distinction_n be_v good_a how_o shall_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o apostle_n stand_v he_o do_v not_o offer_v himself_o but_o once_o because_o he_o suffer_v but_o once_o reason_n ii_o the_o romish_a church_n hold_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v all_o one_o for_o substance_n with_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o he_o offer_v on_o the_o cross_n if_o that_o be_v so_o than_o the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o eucharist_n must_v either_o be_v a_o continuance_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v begin_v on_o the_o cross_n or_o else_o a_o alteration_n or_o repartition_n of_o it_o now_o let_v they_o choose_v of_o these_o twain_o which_o they_o will_v if_o they_o say_v it_o be_v a_o continuance_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_n christ_n be_v but_o the_o beginner_n and_o the_o priest_n the_o finisher_n thereof_o they_o make_v it_o imperfect_a for_o to_o continue_v a_o thing_n till_o it_o be_v accomplish_v be_v to_o bring_v perfection_n unto_o it_o but_o christ_n sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_n be_v then_o full_o perfect_v as_o by_o his_o own_o testimony_n appear_v when_o he_o say_v consummatum_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v finish_v again_o if_o they_o say_v it_o be_v a_o repetition_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n thus_o also_o they_o make_v it_o imperfect_a for_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n use_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v imperfect_a because_o they_o be_v repeat_v reason_n iii_o a_o real_a and_o outward_a sacrifice_n in_o a_o sacrament_n be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n and_o especial_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o one_o end_n thereof_o be_v to_o keep_v in_o memory_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ._n now_o every_o remembrance_n must_v be_v of_o a_o thing_n absent_a past_a and_o do_v and_o if_o christ_n be_v daily_o and_o real_o sacrifice_v the_o sacrament_n be_v no_o fit_a memorial_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n again_o the_o principal_a end_n for_o which_o the_o sacrament_n be_v ordain_v be_v that_o god_n may_v give_v and_o we_o receive_v christ_n with_o his_o benefit_n and_o therefore_o to_o give_v and_o take_v to_o eat_v and_o drink_v be_v here_o the_o principal_a action_n now_o in_o a_o real_a sacrifice_n god_n do_v not_o give_v christ_n &_o the_o priest_n receive_v he_o of_o god_n but_o contrariwise_o he_o give_v &_o offer_v christ_n unto_o god_n and_o god_n receive_v some_o thing_n of_o us._n to_o help_v the_o matter_n they_o say_v that_o this_o sacrifice_n serve_v not_o proper_o to_o make_v any_o satisfaction_n to_o god_n but_o rather_o to_o apply_v unto_o we_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n be_v already_o make_v but_o this_o answer_n s●ill_o make_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n in_o which_o god_n give_v christ_n unto_o we_o whereas_o in_o a_o sacrifice_n god_n receive_v from_o man_n and_o man_n give_v something_o to_o god_n a_o sacrifice_n therefore_o be_v no_o fit_a mean_n to_o apply_v any_o thing_n unto_o we_o that_o be_v give_v of_o god_n reason_n iv._o hebr._n 7.24,25_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v a_o difference_n between_o christ_n the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o all_o leviticall_a priest_n in_o this_o that_o they_o be_v many_o one_o succeed_v another_o but_o he_o be_v only_o one_o have_v a_o eternal_a priesthood_n which_o can_v pass_v from_o he_o to_o any_o other_o now_o if_o this_o difference_n be_v good_a than_o christ_n alone_o in_o his_o own_o very_a person_n must_v be_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o no_o other_o with_o or_o under_o he_o otherwise_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o shall_v be_v more_o priest_n in_o number_n then_o in_o the_o old_a if_o they_o say_v that_o the_o whole_a action_n remain_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o the_o priest_n be_v but_o a_o instrument_n under_o he_o as_o they_o say_v i_o say_v again_o it_o be_v false_a because_o the_o whole_a oblation_n be_v act_v or_o do_v by_o the_o priest_n himself_o and_o he_o which_o do_v all_o be_v more_o than_o a_o bare_a instrument_n reason_n v._o if_o the_o priest_n do_v offer_v to_o god_n christ_n real_a body_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n than_o man_n be_v become_v a_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o christ._n now_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v that_o the_o priest_n in_o his_o mass_n be_v a_o priest_n proper_o and_o his_o sacrifice_n a_o real_a sacrifice_n differ_v only_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o offer_v from_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o in_o the_o very_a canon_n of_o the_o mass_n they_o insinuate_v thus_o much_o when_o they_o request_v god_n to_o accept_v their_o gift_n and_o offering_n namely_o christ_n himself_o offer_v as_o he_o do_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o abel_n and_o noe._n now_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o think_v that_o any_o creature_n shall_v be_v a_o mediator_n between_o christ_n and_o god_n therefore_o christ_n can_v not_o possible_o be_v offer_v by_o any_o creature_n unto_o god_n reason_n vi_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n a_o certain_a council_n hold_v at_o toledo_n in_o spain_n reprove_v the_o minister_n that_o they_o offer_v sacrifice_v often_o the_o same_o day_n without_o the_o holy_a communion_n 5._o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v these_o relation_n be_v make_v unto_o we_o that_o certain_a priest_n do_v not_o so_o many_o time_n receive_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n as_o they_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o one_o day_n but_o in_o one_o day_n if_o they_o offer_v many_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o all_o the_o oblation_n they_o suspend_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n here_o mark_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n in_o ancient_a mass_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o form_n of_o divine_a service_n because_o none_o do_v communicate_v no_o not_o the_o priest_n himself_o and_o in_o a_o other_o council_n the_o name_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v put_v only_o for_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n it_o have_v please_v we_o that_o prayer_n supplication_n mass_n which_o shall_v be_v allow_v in_o the_o council_n be_v use_v a●d_a in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v take_v when_o speech_n be_v use_v of_o the_o make_n or_o compound_v of_o mass_n for_o the_o sacrifice_n propitiatory_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n admit_v no_o composition_n abbat_n paschasius_fw-la say_v 9_o because_o we_o sin_v daily_a christ_n be_v sacrifice_v for_o we_o mystical_o and_o his_o passion_n be_v give_v in_o mystery_n these_o his_o word_n be_v against_o the_o real_a sacrifice_n but_o yet_o he_o expound_v himself_o more_o plain_o cap._n 10._o the_o blood_n be_v drink_v in_o mystery_n spiritual_o and_o it_o be_v all_o spiritual_a which_o we_o eat_v etc._n etc._n 12._o the_o priest_n distribute_v to_o every_o one_o not_o as_o much_o as_o the_o outward_a ●ight_n give_v but_o as_o much_o as_o faith_n receive_v cap._n 13._o the_o full_a similitude_n be_v outward_o and_o the_o immaculate_a flesh_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v faith_n inward_o that_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o want_v to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o it_o be_v not_o ridiculous_a to_o pagan_n that_o we_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o a_o kill_v man_n cap._n 6._o one_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n spiritual_o and_o drink_v his_o blood_n another_o seem_v to_o receive_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o morsel_n of_o bread_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n his_o reason_n be_v because_o they_o come_v unprepared_a now_o then_o consider_v in_o all_o these_o place_n he_o make_v no_o receive_n but_o spiritual_a neither_o do_v he_o make_v any_o sacrifice_n but_o spiritual_a iu_o objection_n of_o papist_n i._o gen._n 14._o v._n 18._o when_o abraham_n be_v come_v from_o the_o slaughter_n of_o the_o king_n melchizedech_n meet_v he_o and_o bring_v forth_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n now_o this_o bread_n and_o wine_n say_v they_o he_o bring_v forth_o to_o offer_v for_o a_o sacrifice_n because_o it_o be_v say_v he_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n and_o they_o reason_n thus_o christ_n be_v a_o priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchizedek_n therefore_o as_o melchizedek_n offer_v bread_n and_o wine_n so_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n offer_v himself_o in_o sacrifice_n
moses_n a_o reason_n may_v be_v frame_v thus_o if_o you_o see_v no_o image_n namely_o of_o god_n you_o shall_v make_v none_o but_o you_o see_v no_o image_n only_o hear_v a_o voice_n therefore_o you_o shall_v make_v no_o image_n of_o god_n the_o second_o reason_n that_o idolatry_n which_o the_o israelite_n commit_v the_o very_a same_o be_v prohibit_v in_o this_o commandment_n but_o the_o israelite_n idolatry_n be_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o a_o image_n hos._n 2._o 16._o at_o that_o day_n say_v the_o lord_n thou_o shall_v call_v i_o no_o more_o baali_n but_o shall_v call_v i_o ishi_n the_o golden_a calf_n be_v a_o image_n of_o god_n for_o when_o it_o be_v finish_v aaron_n proclaim_v that_o to_o morrow_n shall_v be_v a_o feast_n to_o jehovah_n exod._n 32.5_o and_o the_o same_o calf_n be_v term_v a_o idol_n act._n 7.41_o therefore_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n in_o a_o image_n be_v here_o prohibit_v any_o grave_a image_n hear_v the_o more_o special_a be_v put_v for_o the_o more_o general_a namely_o a_o grave_a image_n for_o all_o counterfeit_a mean_n of_o god_n worship_n the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o commandment_n be_v here_o illustrate_v by_o a_o double_a distribution_n the_o first_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o cause_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v thou_o any_o idol_n whether_o it_o be_v engrave_v in_o wood_n or_o stone_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v paint_v in_o a_o table_n the_o second_o be_v take_v from_o the_o place_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v thou_o a_o idol_n of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n as_o star_n and_o bird_n or_o in_o the_o earth_n as_o of_o man_n woman_n beast_n or_o under_o the_o earth_n as_o fish_n this_o place_n be_v so_o expound_v by_o moses_n deut._n 4._o 14._o to_o the_o 20._o verse_n thou_o shall_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o they_o this_n be_v the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o commandment_n forbid_v all_o man_n to_o fall_v down_o before_o a_o idol_n in_o this_o word_n bow_v down_o be_v again_o the_o special_a put_v for_o the_o general_a for_o in_o it_o be_v inhibit_v all_o feign_a worship_n of_o god_n for_o i_o these_o word_n be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o this_o commandment_n persuade_v to_o obedience_n by_o four_o reason_n the_o lord_n which_o be_v strong_a the_o first_o reason_n god_n be_v strong_a and_o so_o able_a to_o revenge_v idolatry_n heb._n 10.31_o a_o jealous_a god_n this_o speech_n be_v take_v from_o the_o estate_n of_o wedlock_n for_o god_n be_v call_v the_o husband_n of_o his_o church_n isaiah_n 54.5_o eph._n 5.26,27_o and_o our_o spiritual_a worship_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a marriage_n of_o our_o soul_n consecrate_v unto_o the_o lord._n jer._n 2._o 2._o i_o remember_v thou_o with_o the_o kindness_n of_o thy_o youth_n and_o the_o love_n of_o thy_o marriage_n when_o thou_o wente_v after_o i_o in_o the_o wilderness_n in_o a_o land_n that_o be_v not_o sow_v here_o be_v another_o argument_n draw_v from_o a_o comparison_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v like_a god_n people_n must_v alone_o worship_v he_o because_o they_o be_v link_v to_o he_o as_o a_o wife_n be_v to_o her_o husband_n unto_o who_o alone_o she_o be_v bind_v therefore_o if_o his_o people_n forsake_v he_o and_o betrothe_v themselves_o unto_o idol_n he_o will_v undoubted_o give_v they_o a_o bill_n of_o divorcement_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o espouse_v unto_o he_o visit_v to_o visit_v be_v not_o only_o to_o punish_v the_o child_n for_o the_o father_n offence_n but_o to_o make_v notice_n and_o apprehend_v they_o in_o the_o same_o fault_n by_o reason_n they_o be_v give_v over_o to_o commit_v their_o father_n transgression_n that_o for_o they_o they_o be_v punish_v and_o this_o be_v the_o three_o reason_n draw_v from_o the_o effect_n of_o god_n anger_n hate_v i_o it_o may_v be_v this_o be_v a_o secret_a answer_n the_o objection_n whereof_o be_v not_o here_o in_o express_a word_n set_v down_o but_o may_v be_v thus_o frame_v what_o if_o we_o use_v idol_n to_o inflame_v and_o excite_v in_o we_o a_o love_n and_o remembrance_n of_o thou_o the_o answer_n be_v this_o by_o the_o contrary_a you_o may_v think_v that_o your_o use_n of_o idol_n kindle_v in_o you_o a_o love_n of_o i_o but_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o that_o that_o all_o such_o as_o use_v they_o can_v choose_v but_o hate_v i_o show_v mercy_n the_o four_o reason_n derive_v from_o the_o effect_n of_o god_n mercy_n to_o such_o as_o observe_v this_o commandment_n here_o may_v we_o first_o observe_v that_o god_n mercy_n exceed_v his_o justice_n psal._n 103.8_o the_o lord_n be_v full_a of_o compassion_n and_o mercy_n slow_a to_o anger_n and_o of_o great_a kindness_n vers_fw-la 17._o the_o love_a kindness_n of_o the_o lord_n endure_v for_o ever_o vers_fw-la 9_o he_o will_v not_o always_o chide_v neither_o keep_v his_o anger_n for_o ever_o second_o we_o may_v not_o surmise_v that_o this_o excellent_a promise_n be_v make_v to_o every_o one_o particular_o who_o be_v bear_v of_o faithful_a parent_n for_o godly_a isaak_n have_v godless_a esau_n to_o his_o son_n and_o godless_a saul_n have_v godly_a jonathan_n the_o negative_a part_n thou_o shall_v neither_o worship_v false_a god_n nor_o the_o true_a god_n with_o false_a worship_n many_o thing_n be_v here_o forbid_v i._n the_o representation_n of_o god_n by_o a_o image_n for_o it_o be_v a_o lie_n habak_v 2._o 18._o what_o profit_v the_o image_n for_o the_o maker_n thereof_o have_v make_v it_o a_o image_n and_o a_o teacher_n of_o lie_n zach._n 10.2_o the_o idol_n have_v speak_v vanity_n jerem._n 10._o 8._o the_o stock_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o vanity_n the_o eliber_n council_n in_o the_o 39_o canon_n have_v this_o edict_n we_o think_v it_o not_o meet_v to_o have_v image_n in_o church_n lest_o that_o which_o be_v worship_v and_o adore_v shall_v be_v paint_v upon_o wall_n clement_n book_n 5._o add_v jacob_n dom._n that_o serpent_n by_o other_o be_v wont_a to_o speak_v these_o word_n we_o in_o honour_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n be_v accustom_v to_o adore_v visible_a image_n the_o which_o out_o of_o all_o controversy_n be_v very_o false_a august_n in_o his_o treatise_n upon_o the_o 113._o psalm_n the_o image_n also_o of_o the_o cross_n and_o christ_n crucify_v out_o to_o be_v abolish_v out_o of_o church_n as_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v 2._o king_n 18.4_o hezekiah_n be_v commend_v for_o break_v in_o piece_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n to_o which_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n do_v then_o burn_v incense_n this_o do_v hezekiah_n albeit_o at_o the_o first_o this_o serpent_n be_v make_v by_o the_o lord_n appointment_n numb_a 21.8_o and_o be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n passion_n joh._n 3.14_o origen_n in_o his_o 7._o book_n against_o celsus_n we_o permit_v not_o any_o to_o adore_v jesus_n upon_o the_o altar_n in_o image_n or_o upon_o church_n wall_n because_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v have_v none_o other_o god_n but_o i_o epiphanius●_n in_o that_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v to_o john_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v it_o be_v against_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n to_o see_v any_o image_n hang_v in_o the_o church_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o christ_n or_o any_o other_o saint_n and_o therefore_o even_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n rend_v he_o asunder_o the_o veil_n wherein_o such_o a_o image_n be_v paint_v some_o object_n the_o figure_n or_o sign_n which_o appear_v to_o constantine_n wherein_o he_o shall_v overcome_v but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v triflin_o imagine_v but_o of_o christ_n name_n for_o the_o thing_n be_v make_v of_o these_o two_o greek_a letter_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d conjoin_v together_o euseb._n in_o the_o life_n of_o constant._n book_n 1._o chap._n 22,25_o neither_o serve_v the_o cherubim_n which_o solomon_n place_v in_o the_o temple_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o image_n for_o they_o be_v only_o in_o the_o holy_a of_o holy_a where_o the_o people_n can_v not_o see_v they_o and_o they_o be_v type_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o messiah_n unto_o who_o the_o very_a angel_n be_v subject_a the_o which_o we_o have_v now_o verify_v in_o christ._n if_o any_o man_n reply_n that_o they_o worship_v not_o the_o image_n but_o god_n in_o the_o image_n let_v he_o know_v that_o the_o creature_n can_v comprehend_v the_o image_n of_o the_o creator_n and_o if_o it_o can_v yet_o god_n will_v not_o be_v worship_v in_o it_o because_o it_o be_v a_o dead_a thing_n yea_o the_o work_n of_o man_n hand_n not_o of_o god_n and_o therefore_o be_v more_o base_a than_o the_o small_a live_a creature_n of_o the_o which_o we_o may_v lawful_o say_v it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n this_o evince_v that_o no_o kind_n of_o divine_a worship_n belong_v to_o a_o image_n either_o simple_o or_o by_o relation_n
mercy_n in_o that_o he_o pardon_v their_o sin_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o son_n eph._n 1._o 18._o that_o the_o eye_n of_o your_o understanding_n may_v be_v lighten_v that_o you_o may_v know_v what_o the_o hope_n be_v of_o his_o call_n and_o what_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o glorious_a inheritance_n be_v in_o his_o saint_n 19_o and_o what_o be_v the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o his_o power_n towards_o we_o which_o believe_v according_a to_o the_o work_n of_o his_o mighty_a power_n 20._o which_o he_o wrought_v in_o christ._n chap._n 3.18_o that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v with_o all_o saint_n what_o be_v the_o breadth_n and_o length_n and_o depth_n and_o height_n 19_o and_o to_o know_v the_o love_n of_o christ._n all_o these_o thing_n the_o lord_n himself_o have_v thus_o decree_v and_o in_o his_o good_a time_n will_v accomplish_v they_o to_o the_o glorious_a praise_n of_o his_o name_n pro._n 16.4_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v all_o thing_n for_o his_o own_o sake_n yea_o even_o the_o wicked_a for_o the_o day_n of_o evil_a chap._n 50._o concern_v the_o order_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n requisite_a to_o obtain_v salvation_n predestination_n and_o the_o execution_n thereof_o predestination_n be_v a_o foreordain_v of_o the_o reasonable_a creature_n to_o grace_n in_o this_o life_n &_o glory_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v sebast._n cattaneus_fw-la enchirid._n tract_n 1._o chap._n last_o this_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o first_o effect_n thereof_o which_o be_v vocation_n election_n and_o ordination_n to_o eternal_a life_n have_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o in_o god_n namely_o his_o will_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o last_o effect_n which_o be_v the_o execution_n of_o such_o a_o ordinance_n and_o the_o obtain_n of_o eternal_a life_n it_o have_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o from_o man_n because_o according_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n god_n predestination_n be_v by_o reason_n of_o work_n foresee_v in_o man_n that_o be_v god_n do_v therefore_o predestinate_a or_o reject_v some_o man_n because_o he_o forsee_v that_o he_o will_v well_o or_o bad_o use_v his_o grace_n but_o for_o the_o more_o evident_a declaration_n of_o this_o these_o seven_o conclusion_n must_v be_v set_v down_o i._o the_o predestination_n and_o reprobation_n of_o god_n do_v not_o constrain_v or_o enforce_v any_o necessity_n upon_o the_o will_n of_o man_n ii_o god_n have_v predestinate_v all_o man_n that_o be_v he_o have_v appoint_v and_o dispose_v all_o man_n so_o as_o they_o may_v obtain_v eternal_a salvation_n iii_o man_n be_v neither_o by_o necessity_n nor_o chance_n save_v or_o condemn_v but_o voluntary_o iv._o god_n have_v predestinate_v some_o other_o have_v he_o reject_v v._o those_o who_o god_n have_v predestinate_v by_o his_o absolute_a predestination_n which_o can_v not_o be_v lose_v they_o shall_v infallible_o die_v in_o grace_n but_o they_o which_o be_v predestinate_a by_o that_o predestination_n which_o be_v according_o to_o pre●ent_a justice_n may_v be_v lose_v by_o some_o mortal_a sin_n which_o follow_v be_v not_o infallible_o save_v but_o oftentimes_o such_o be_v condemn_v and_o loose_v their_o crown_n and_o glory_n hence_o arise_v that_o position_n of_o they_o that_o he_o which_o be_v justify_v may_v be_v a_o reprobate_n &_o perish_v eternal_o torrensis_fw-la aug._n confess_v 2._o book_n 4._o chap._n 20._o sect._n therefore_o predestination_n be_v not_o certain_a see_v it_o may_v be_v lose_v vi_o god_n alone_o do_v know_v the_o certain_a and_o set_v number_n of_o they_o which_o be_v predestinate_a vii_o there_o be_v one_o set_v number_n of_o they_o which_o be_v predestinate_a or_o reprove_v and_o that_o can_v neither_o be_v increase_v nor_o diminish_v the_o execution_n of_o predestination_n be_v either_o in_o infant_n or_o those_o of_o year_n of_o discretion_n concern_v infant_n the_o merit_n of_o christ_n be_v appliy_v unto_o they_o by_o baptism_n right_o administer_v so_o that_o whatsoever_o in_o original_a corruption_n may_v true_o and_o proper_o be_v account_v for_o sin_n it_o be_v not_o only_o as_o i_o may_v say_v not_o pare_v away_o or_o not_o impute_v but_o utter_o take_v away_o for_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o god_n can_v hate_v in_o such_o as_o be_v renew_a council_n trid._n 5._o sect_n 5._o can._n nevertheless_o they_o be_v urge_v to_o confess_v that_o there_o remain_v yet_o in_o such_o as_o be_v baptize_v concupiscence_n or_o the_o relic_n of_o sin_n the_o which_o see_v it_o be_v leave_v in_o man_n for_o they_o to_o wrestle_v withal_o it_o have_v not_o power_n to_o hurt_v such_o as_o yield_v not_o unto_o it_o the_o execution_n of_o predestination_n in_o such_o as_o be_v of_o ripe_a year_n have_v six_o degree_n the_o first_o be_v vocation_n whereby_o man_n not_o for_o their_o own_o merit_n but_o by_o god_n prevent_v grace_n through_o christ_n be_v call_v to_o turn_v unto_o god_n the_o second_o be_v a_o preparation_n to_o righteousness_n whereby_o man_n through_o the_o inherent_a power_n of_o freewill_n do_v apply_v themselves_o to_o justification_n after_o that_o the_o same_o power_n be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o freewill_n be_v only_o somewhat_o diminish_v and_o not_o extinguish_v and_o therefore_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n touch_v and_o enlighten_v the_o heart_n it_o work_v together_o with_o the_o same_o spirit_n free_o assent_v unto_o the_o same_o this_o preparation_n have_v seven_o degrees●_n biel._n 4._o book_n 14._o do_v 2._o quest_n the_o first_o be_v faith_n which_o be_v a_o knowledge_n and_o a_o assent_n whereby_o man_n agree_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v true_a which_o be_v deliver_v concern_v god_n and_o his_o will_n reveal_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o justification_n and_o prepare_v the_o heart_n because_o it_o stir_v up_o freewill_n that_o it_o may_v affect_v the_o heart_n with_o those_o motion_n by_o which_o it_o be_v prepare_v to_o justification_n i._o the_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o apprehend_v the_o ouglines_n of_o sin_n &_o the_o wage_n thereof_o ii_o after_o this_o follow_v a_o fear_n of_o god_n anger_n and_o of_o hell_n fire_n iii_o then_o begin_v man_n to_o dislike_v and_o in_o some_o sort_n to_o detest_v sin_n from_o these_o arise_v a_o certain_a disposition_n which_o have_v annex_v unto_o it_o the_o merit_n of_o congruity_n yet_o not_o immediate_a nor_o sufficient_a but_o imperfect_a iv._o at_o the_o length_n faith_n return_v to_o the_o contemplation_n of_o god_n mercy_n &_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v ready_a to_o forgive_v sin_n by_o the_o infusion_n of_o charity_n into_o those_o which_o be_v before_o sufficient_o prepare_v and_o dispose_v v._o out_o of_o this_o contemplation_n proceed_v the_o act_n of_o hope_n whereby_o faith_n begin_v to_o desire_v and_o to_o wait_v on_o god_n as_o the_o chief_a good_a vi_o out_o of_o this_o act_n of_o hope_n arise_v love_n whereby_o god_n be_v love_v above_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n vii_o after_o this_o love_n follow_v a_o new_a dislike_n and_o detestation_n of_o sin_n not_o so_o much_o in_o regard_n of_o fear_n of_o the_o punishment_n in_o hell_n fire_n as_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o offence_n of_o god_n who_o be_v simple_o love_v more_o than_o all_o other_o thing_n viii_o after_o all_o these_o follow_v a_o purpose_n of_o amendment_n of_o life_n and_o here_o come_v in_o the_o merit_n of_o congruity_n that_o be_v sufficient_a or_o else_o the_o immediate_a sufficient_a and_o last_o disposition_n before_o the_o infusion_n of_o grace_n the_o three_o degree_n of_o predestination_n be_v the_o first_o justification_n whereby_o man_n of_o unjust_a be_v make_v just_a not_o only_o through_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n but_o also_o by_o a_o sanctification_n of_o the_o inward_a man_n by_o his_o voluntary_a receive_n of_o grace_n &_o gift_n the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o this_o justification_n be_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o the_o meritorious_a passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whereby_o he_o purchase_v justification_n for_o man_n the_o instrumental_a cause_n be_v baptism_n the_o formal_a cause_n be_v not_o that_o justice_n which_o be_v inherent_a in_o christ_n but_o which_o he_o infuse_v into_o man_n and_o that_o be_v especial_o hope_n and_o charity_n the_o four_o degree_n be_v the_o second_o justification_n whereby_o man_n be_v of_o just_a make_v more_o just_a the_o cause_n hereof_o be_v faith_n join_v with_o good_a work_n it_o be_v possible_a for_o such_o as_o be_v renew_a to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v false_a that_o a_o just_a man_n commit_v so_o much_o as_o a_o venial_a sin_n in_o his_o best_a action_n much_o less_o that_o he_o deserve_v eternal_a death_n for_o the_o same_o the_o five_o degree_n be_v the_o reparation_n of_o a_o sinner_n by_o the_o
be_v grant_v then_o will_v it_o follow_v of_o necessity_n that_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n must_v be_v make_v void_a his_o power_n weaken_v and_o his_o will_n change_v each_o of_o which_o be_v impious_a once_o to_o dream_v of_o for_o he_o which_o change_v his_o counsel_n or_o his_o will_n do_v therefore_o change_v it_o either_o because_o he_o at_o the_o length_n see_v that_o he_o may_v have_v take_v better_a advice_n or_o else_o in_o that_o he_o see_v that_o he_o can_v not_o bring_v his_o former_a purpose_n about_o as_o he_o will_v either_o of_o these_o be_v far_o from_o our_o lord_n god_n iv._n if_o we_o resolve_v that_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n be_v any_o way_n mutable_a it_o will_v by_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o every_o man_n must_v be_v uncertain_a whether_o he_o be_v predestinate_a to_o life_n or_o not_o whereby_o that_o notable_a stay_n &_o ground_n of_o our_o full_a assurance_n to_o be_v save_v be_v utter_o shake_v &_o overturn_v wherefore_o let_v this_o truth_n be_v maintain_v of_o we_o namely_o that_o both_o the_o election_n and_o reprobation_n of_o god_n stand_v immutable_a so_o that_o neither_o the_o elect_a can_v become_v reprobate_n nor_o the_o reprobate_n elect_v and_o consequent_o neither_o these_o be_v save_v nor_o they_o condemn_v against_o this_o doctrine_n the_o popish_a sort_n except_v if_o you_o speak_v in_o a_o compound_n sense_n or_o meaning_n in_o sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o the_o predestinate_a can_v not_o be_v save_v nor_o such_o as_o be_v foreknow_v perish_v but_o if_o in_o a_o sense_n divide_v in_o sensu_fw-la diviso_fw-la it_o be_v not_o so_o this_o distinction_n be_v plain_a by_o this_o example_n white_a colour_n in_o a_o compound_n meaning_n can_v be_v black_a because_o blackness_n be_v repugnant_a &_o contrary_a to_o whiteness_n but_o in_o a_o divided_a sense_n white_a colour_n now_o may_v afterward_o be_v make_v black_a in_o like_a sort_n one_o predestinate_v to_o salvation_n may_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o freewill_n he_o have_v sin_n &_o so_o be_v damn_v ans._n these_o be_v silly_a shift_n and_o mere_a sophism_n because_o such_o as_o be_v predestinate_v to_o the_o end_n namely_o salvation_n be_v necessary_o predestinate_a to_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n the_o which_o they_o can_v but_o use_v and_o by_o they_o come_v to_o the_o end_n itself_o the_o iii_o error_n all_o man_n be_v predestinate_a that_o be_v dispose_v and_o ordain_v of_o god_n so_o as_o they_o may_v attain_v eternal_a life_n sebast._n cattaneus_fw-la in_o his_o enchirid._n chap._n of_o prede_a the_o confutation_n this_o be_v manifest_o false_a for_o i._o infant_n who_o so_o son_n as_o they_o be_v bear_v depart_v this_o life_n see_v for_o want_n of_o time_n they_o can_v in_o this_o life_n use_v the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n albeit_o they_o may_v have_v life_n eternal_a yet_o obtain_v they_o it_o not_o by_o use_v the_o mean_n unto_o the_o same_o ii_o that_o which_o the_o lord_n indeed_o actual_o do_v the_o very_a same_o have_v he_o determine_v to_o do_v for_o he_o do_v nothing_o either_o unaduised_o or_o unwilling_o but_o he_o actual_o forsake_v a_o very_a great_a part_n of_o mankind_n the_o which_o be_v shut_v up_o under_o contumacy_n he_o do_v leave_v to_o itself_o act._n 14.16_o who_o in_o time_n past_o suffer_v all_o the_o gentile_n to_o walk_v in_o their_o own_o way_n hence_o also_o be_v it_o that_o eph._n 2._o all_o the_o gentile_n be_v say_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n therefore_o god_n decree_v to_o forsake_v some_o man_n in_o this_o life_n and_o consequent_o he_o ordain_v not_o all_o man_n to_o the_o obtain_n of_o eternal_a life_n nay_o if_o god_n once_o but_o will_v in_o his_o secret_a will_n that_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v it_o be_v unpossible_a for_o any_o to_o perish_v because_o god_n willing_a be_v his_o do_v of_o it_o and_o if_o he_o that_o be_v ordain_v to_o salvation_n perish_v then_o must_v god_n now_o needs_o have_v leave_v off_o to_o will_n that_o which_o he_o will_v from_o all_o eternity_n or_o else_o begin_v to_o will_v that_o which_o before_o he_o will_v not_o the_o which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o god_n without_o blasphemy_n iii_o paul_n 2._o thes._n 2.10_o say_v that_o there_o be_v certain_a man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o perish_v and_o they_o he_o distinguish_v from_o the_o elect_a v_o 13._o rom._n 9.21,22_o have_v not_o the_o potter_n power_n etc._n etc._n where_o there_o be_v not_o only_o mention_v make_v of_o vessel_n of_o glory_n and_o mercy_n but_o also_o of_o certain_a make_v and_o fashion_v in_o god_n eternal_a counsel_n as_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n now_o look_v who_o god_n have_v make_v to_o wrath_n and_o destruction_n they_o he_o never_o dispose_v to_o obtain_v eternal_a life_n the_o iv._o error_n predestination_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o last_o effect_n thereof_o have_v this_o cause_n in_o man_n that_o be_v in_o man_n freewill_n and_o work_n for_o they_o who_o god_n have_v foresee_v that_o they_o will_v receive_v grace_n offer_v in_o christ_n and_o lead_v their_o life_n according_a to_o the_o law_n they_o he_o predestinate_v not_o of_o work_n but_o of_o his_o mercy_n yet_o so_o as_o that_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o work_n or_o to_o deal_v with_o they_o according_a to_o their_o work_n or_o as_o other_o say_v to_o ordain_v they_o by_o their_o work_n foresee_v as_o for_o example_n god_n do_v from_o all_o eternity_n foresee_v and_o foreknow_v that_o peter_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o judas_n condemn_v because_o he_o from_o the_o same_o eternity_n do_v both_o foresee_v &_o foreknow_v that_o peter_n will_v accept_v of_o the_o grace_n offer_v unto_o he_o and_o after_o use_v the_o same_o aright_o and_o he_o do_v also_o foresee_v that_o judas_n shall_v receive_v the_o grace_n offer_v yet_o notwithstanding_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o perverse_a will_n use_v the_o same_o perverse_o the_o confutation_n this_o their_o forge_a devise_n of_o foresee_v work_n i._o paul_n do_v show_v to_o be_v plain_o counterfeit_a when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o the_o ephesian_n be_v elect_v in_o christ_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v and_o that_o not_o because_o he_o do_v foresee_v that_o they_o will_v be_v holy_a but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o unblameable_a before_o god_n with_o love_n and_o 2._o v_o 10._o he_o say_v they_o be_v create_v to_o good_a work_n in_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v walk_v therein_o in_o which_o place_n good_a work_n they_o be_v make_v effect_n of_o predestination_n but_o the_o effect_n foresee_v can_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o cause_n for_o that_o every_o cause_n in_o the_o order_n both_o of_o nature_n and_o knowledge_n do_v go_v before_o his_o effect_n ii_o tit._n 3.5_o not_o of_o work_n which_o we_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n do_v god_n elect_v and_o save_v us._n iii_o god_n in_o elect_v we_o do_v not_o regard_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o himself_o but_o in_o himself_o do_v he_o elect_v us._n eph._n 1.4_o and_o 9_o therefore_o do_v he_o not_o regard_v future_a work_n iv._o some_o of_o the_o popish_a schoolman_n confess_v that_o predestination_n do_v put_v nothing_o in_o the_o party_n predestinate_v in_o respect_n of_o he_o for_o which_o god_n do_v predestine_v he_o thom._n 1._o primae_fw-la quest_n 23._o art_n 2._o v._o election_n be_v only_o on_o god_n mercy_n rom._n 9.16_o vi_o god_n see_v no_o grace_n in_o man_n but_o that_o which_o he_o himself_o must_v bestow_v upon_o he_o whence_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o in_o election_n the_o beginning_n thereof_o proceed_v from_o grace_n vii_o see_v there_o be_v nothing_o either_o above_o god_n or_o great_a than_o god_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v impious_a to_o assign_v any_o cause_n of_o his_o will_n either_o out_o of_o or_o above_o his_o majesty_n and_o therefore_o that_o his_o foreknowledge_n of_o faith_n &_o work_n shall_v be_v account_v the_o impulsive_a cause_n of_o his_o decree_n concern_v man_n salvation_n we_o do_v right_o deny_v the_o v._o error_n by_o baptism_n right_o administer_v not_o only_o the_o guiltiness_n but_o also_o the_o corruption_n of_o original_a sin_n be_v so_o wash_v away_o as_o that_o it_o be_v not_o afterward_o proper_o account_v a_o sin_n the_o confutation_n we_o contrary_o do_v thus_o distinguish_v of_o sin_n sin_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o guiltiness_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o punishment_n together_o by_o one_o act_n be_v take_v away_o in_o baptism_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o that_o error_n and_o corruption_n of_o nature_n it_o be_v not_o at_o the_o first_o quite_o take_v away_o but_o successive_o and_o by_o little_a and_o little_a it_o be_v extinguish_v even_o as_o our_o renovation_n wrought_v by_o
cause_n but_o for_o that_o it_o so_o please_v he_o rom._n 9.18_o v._o if_o this_o opinion_n shall_v be_v true_a then_o will_v it_o follow_v that_o man_n shall_v be_v condemn_v for_o nothing_o else_o but_o incredulity_n the_o which_o be_v not_o so_o joh._n 3.36_o christ_n speak_v of_o unbelief_n say_v not_o that_o for_o it_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n come_v upon_o man_n but_o remain_v upon_o he_o and_o why_o shall_v we_o daily_o ask_v pardon_n for_o our_o sin_n if_o nothing_o but_o incredulity_n or_o unbelief_n condemn_v we_o nay_o although_o that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o that_o corruption_n of_o original_a sin_n be_v sufficient_a enough_o to_o condemn_v man_n vi_o also_o that_o admiration_n which_o paul_n have_v rom._n 9.20_o o_o man_n who_o be_v thou_o which_o dispute_a with_o god●_n do_v plain_o show_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n in_o reject_v some_o be_v unsearchable_a and_o that_o it_o do_v not_o at_o all_o depend_v upon_o any_o foresee_v contumacy_n towards_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n offer_v in_o the_o gospel_n for_o if_o it_o be_v otherwise_o we_o may_v easy_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o god_n decree_n august_n epist_n 105._o say_v very_o well_o who_o say_v he_o create_v the_o reprobate_n but_o god_n and_o why_o but_o because_o it_o please_v he_o but_o why_o please_v it_o he_o o_o man_n who_o be_v thou_o that_o dispute_a with_o god_n some_o divine_n perceive_v that_o this_o be_v a_o hard_a sentence_n they_o go_v about_o to_o mitigate_v it_o in_o this_o sort_n the_o matter_n say_v they_o or_o object_n of_o predestination_n be_v a_o reasonable_a creature_n and_o that_o not_o simple_o or_o absolute_o consider_v but_o partly_o as_o it_o fall_v partly_o as_o of_o itself_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o fall_v and_o thereupon_o god_n preordain_v man_n from_o everlasting_a consider_v they_o not_o simple_o as_o he_o be_v to_o make_v they_o man_n but_o as_o they_o be_v such_o man_n as_o may_v fall_v into_o sin_n and_o again_o be_v redeem_v by_o christ_n and_o after_o call_v to_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o efficient_a or_o first_o motive_n cause_n be_v not_o any_o foreknow_v cause_n either_o this_o or_o that_o but_o the_o mere_a will_n of_o god_n for_o he_o dispose_v all_o thing_n not_o of_o and_o by_o his_o foreknowledge_n but_o rather_o according_a to_o the_o same_o but_o these_o thing_n albeit_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v subtle_a device_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o altogether_o true_a reason_n i._o the_o potter_n when_o he_o purpose_v to_o make_v some_o vessel_n do_v not_o consider_v the_o clay_n and_o regard_n in_o it_o some_o inherent_a quality_n to_o make_v such_o a_o vessel_n but_o he_o make_v it_o of_o such_o and_o such_o a_o form_n to_o this_o or_o that_o use_n even_o of_o his_o alone_a freewill_n and_o pleasure_n ii_o rom._n 9.21_o have_v not_o the_o potter_n power_n to_o make_v of_o the_o same_o lump_n one_o vessel_n to_o honour_n and_o another_o to_o dishonour_v in_o which_o place_n we_o may_v not_o understand_v by_o the_o name_n lump_n all_o mankind_n corrupt_v and_o fall_v and_o so_o to_o be_v redeem_v in_o christ_n for_o then_o paul_n will_v not_o have_v say_v that_o god_n make_v vessel_n of_o wrath_n but_o rather_o that_o he_o do_v forsake_v they_o after_o they_o be_v make_v iii_o this_o seem_v preposterous_a that_o god_n do_v first_o foreknow_v mankind_n create_v fall_v and_o redeem_v in_o christ_n and_o that_o afterward_o he_o ordain_v they_o so_o foreknow_v to_o life_n or_o to_o death_n for_o the_o end_n be_v the_o first_o thing_n in_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o agent_n neither_o will_v a_o most_o skilful_a workman_n first_o prepare_v mean_n by_o which_o he_o may_v be_v help_v to_o do_v a_o thing_n before_o he_o have_v set_v down_o in_o his_o mind_n all_o the_o end_n both_o such_o as_o be_v most_o near_o and_o they_o that_o be_v very_o far_o off_o now_o we_o know_v this_o that_o man_n creation_n and_o his_o fall_n in_o adam_n be_v but_o mean_n to_o execute_v god_n predestination_n and_o therefore_o be_v subordinate_a unto_o it_o but_o the_o end_n of_o god_n decree_n be_v the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o glory_n in_o save_v some_o and_o condemn_v other_o therefore_o we_o may_v not_o once_o imagine_v that_o god_n do_v first_o consult_v of_o the_o mean_n whereby_o he_o determine_v to_o execute_v his_o decree_n before_o he_o deliberate_v of_o the_o election_n and_o reprobation_n of_o man_n the_o four_o error_n god_n calling_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v universal_a yea_o of_o all_o man_n and_o every_o singular_a person_n without_o exception_n the_o confutation_n this_o be_v a_o very_a unreasonable_a position_n reason_n i._o god_n will_v not_o have_v all_o man_n call_v math._n 20.16_o many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o be_v choose_v he_o say_v not_o that_o all_o but_o many_o be_v call_v christ_n in_o his_o disciple_n first_o ambassage_n charge_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o preach_v to_o the_o gentile_n of_o his_o come_n and_o to_o the_o cananitish_a woman_n he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o give_v that_o which_o be_v holy_a unto_o dog_n mat._n 13.11_o it_o be_v not_o give_v to_o every_o one_o to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n rom._n 16._o 25._o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n whether_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o christ_n or_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v keep_v secret_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n ii_o there_o be_v many_o million_o of_o man_n which_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v of_o christ._n act._n 14.16_o god_n in_o time_n past_o suffer_v all_o the_o gentile_n to_o walk_v in_o their_o own_o way_n iii_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n have_v ever_o be_v out_o of_o the_o covenant_n eph._n 2._o 12._o you_o be_v i_o say_v at_o that_o time_n without_o christ_n and_o be_v alien_n from_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n and_o stranger_n from_o the_o covenant_n of_o promise_n and_o have_v no_o hope_n and_o be_v without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n but_o now_o you_o be_v no_o more_o stranger_n and_o forrenner_n but_o citizen_n with_o the_o saint_n object_n they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o simple_o alienate_v but_o abalienate_v from_o god_n now_o how_o can_v they_o be_v abalienate_v except_o either_o they_o or_o their_o predecessor_n have_v be_v in_o the_o covenant_n ans._n the_o gentile_n be_v not_o say_v to_o be_v abalienate_v from_o the_o covenant_n but_o from_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n because_o that_o god_n have_v then_o by_o certain_a law_n rite_n and_o ceremony_n utter_o sever_v and_o distinguish_v the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n from_o all_o other_o nation_n object_n this_o general_a call_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v simple_o of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n but_o of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n deliver_v present_o after_o the_o fall_n in_o his_o unwritten_a word_n but_o afterward_o in_o his_o write_a word_n and_o this_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o know_v although_o many_o through_o their_o own_o default_n know_v it_o not_o ans._n but_o the_o scripture_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o custody_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o every_o one_o be_v not_o credit_v with_o they_o rom._n 3.2_o unto_o the_o jew_n be_v of_o credit_n commit_v the_o oracle_n of_o god_n 1._o tim._n 3._o 15._o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n psal._n 147._o 19_o he_o show_v his_o word_n unto_o jacob_n and_o his_o statute_n and_o law_n to_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n 20._o he_o have_v not_o deal_v so_o with_o every_o nation_n therefore_o they_o have_v not_o know_v his_o law●s_n psal._n 76._o 1._o the_o lord_n be_v famous_a in_o judea_n and_o in_o israel_n be_v his_o name_n great_a object_n the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v make_v with_o adam_n and_o eve_n and_o in_o they_o all_o mankind_n be_v receive_v both_o into_o the_o church_n and_o covenant_n and_o also_o call_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n ans._n i._n this_o reason_n want_v even_o common_a reason_n and_o sense_n to_o say_v that_o god_n give_v his_o promise_n in_o the_o day_n of_o adam_n and_o noah_n do_v in_o they_o call_v all_o mankind_n that_o shall_v come_v after_o ii_o adam_n before_o his_o fall_n do_v indeed_o receive_v the_o grace_n both_o for_o himself_o and_o for_o other_o also_o and_o in_o the_o fall_n he_o lose_v it_o both_o for_o himself_o and_o for_o all_o other_o but_o after_o the_o fall_n he_o receive_v the_o promise_n for_o himself_o alone_o and_o not_o for_o the_o whole_a world_n otherwise_o the_o first_o adam_n shall_v not_o only_o have_v be_v a_o live_a creature_n but_o a_o quicken_a spirit_n the_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o second_o
wise_a do_v second_o by_o the_o manner_n of_o persuasion_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n draw_v not_o reason_n ●rom_o the_o work_n or_o worthiness_n of_o man_n but_o from_o god_n favour_n and_o love_n and_o this_o kind_n of_o persuasion_n be_v far_o different_a from_o that_o which_o satan_n use_v three_o by_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o testimony_n for_o if_o the_o persuasion_n arise_v from_o presumption_n it_o be_v a_o dead_a persuasion_n but_o contrary_o it_o be_v most_o lively_a and_o stir_a if_o it_o come_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o such_o as_o be_v persuade_v that_o they_o be_v elect_v and_o adopt_a child_n of_o god_n they_o will_v love_v god_n they_o will_v trust_v in_o he_o and_o they_o will_v call_v upon_o he_o with_o their_o whole_a heart_n iv._o if_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v not_o so_o powerful_a in_o the_o elect_a then_o may_v they_o judge_v of_o their_o election_n by_o that_o other_o effect_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n namely_o sanctification_n like_a as_o we_o use_v to_o judge_v by_o heat_n that_o there_o be_v fire_n when_o we_o can_v see_v the_o flame_n itself_o v._o and_o of_o all_o the_o effect_n of_o sanctification_n these_o be_v most_o notable_a i._o to_o feel_v our_o want_n and_o in_o the_o bitterness_n of_o heart_n to_o bewail_v the_o offence_n of_o god_n in_o every_o sin_n ii_o to_o strive_v against_o the_o flesh_n that_o be_v to_o resist_v and_o to_o hate_v the_o ungodly_a motion_n thereof_o and_o with_o grief_n to_o think_v they_o burdenous_a &_o troublesome_a iii_o to_o desire_v earnest_o and_o vehement_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n to_o obtain_v eternal_a life_n iv._o when_o it_o be_v obtain_v to_o account_v it_o a_o most_o precious_a jewel_n phil._n 3.8_o v._o to_o love_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o minister_n and_o a_o christian_a in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n if_o need_v require_v to_o be_v ready_a to_o spend_v our_o blood_n with_o they_o mat._n 10.42_o 1._o joh._n 3.16_o vi_o to_o call_v upon_o god_n earnest_o and_o with_o tear_n vii_o to_o desire_v and_o love_n christ_n come_n and_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n that_o a_o end_n may_v be_v make_v of_o the_o day_n of_o sin_n viii_o to_o fly_v all_o occasion_n of_o sin_n and_o serious_o to_o endeavour_v to_o come_v to_o newness_n of_o life_n ix_o to_o persevere_v in_o these_o thing_n to_o the_o last_o gasp_n of_o life_n luther_n have_v a_o good_a sentence_n for_o this_o purpose_n he_o that_o will_v serve_v god_n must_v say_v he_o believe_v that_o which_o can_v be_v see_v hope_v for_o that_o which_o be_v defer_v and_o love_n god_n when_o he_o show_v himself_o a_o enemy_n and_o thus_o remain_v to_o the_o end_n vi_o now_o if_o so_o be_v all_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v very_o feeble_a in_o the_o godly_a they_o must_v know_v this_o that_o god_n try_v they_o yet_o so_o as_o they_o must_v not_o therewith_o be_v dismay_v because_o it_o be_v most_o sure_a that_o if_o they_o have_v faith_n but_o as_o much_o as_o a_o grain_n of_o mustard_n seed_n and_o be_v as_o weak_a as_o a_o young_a infant_n be_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o engraph_v they_o into_o christ_n &_o therefore_o they_o must_v not_o doubt_v of_o their_o election_n because_o they_o see_v their_o faith_n feeble_a and_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n faint_a within_o they_o vii_o neither_o must_v he_o that_o as_o yet_o have_v not_o feel_v in_o his_o heart_n any_o of_o these_o effect_n present_o conclude_v that_o he_o be_v a_o reprobate_n but_o let_v he_o rather_o use_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o sacrament_n that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o inward_a sense_n of_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n draw_v he_o unto_o he_o and_o a_o assurance_n of_o his_o redemption_n by_o christ_n death_n and_o passion_n viii_o no_o man_n may_v peremptory_o set_v down_o that_o himself_o or_o any_o other_o be_v a_o reprobate_n for_o god_n do_v oftentimes_o prefer_v those_o which_o do_v seem_v to_o be_v most_o of_o all_o estrange_v from_o his_o favour_n to_o be_v in_o his_o kingdom_n above_o those_o who_o in_o man_n judgement_n be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n hence_o be_v it_o that_o christ_n say_v the_o publican_n and_o harlot_n go_v before_o you_o and_o many_o a_o one_o be_v call_v at_o the_o eleven_o hour_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o notable_a example_n of_o the_o thief_n upon_o the_o cross_n the_o use_n which_o may_v be_v make_v of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n be_v very_o many_o first_o for_o our_o instruction_n we_o be_v teach_v these_o thing_n i._o that_o there_o be_v neither_o any_o justification_n by_o work_n nor_o any_o work_n of_o we_o that_o be_v meritorious_a for_o election_n be_v by_o the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o in_o like_a sort_n be_v justification_n for_o as_o i_o say_v before_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o cause_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o thing_n cause_v and_o for_o this_o reason_n in_o the_o work_n of_o salvation_n grace_n do_v whole_o challenge_v all_o to_o itself_o rom._n 11.5_o at_o this_o time_n there_o be_v a_o remnant_n through_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n 2._o tim._n 1.9_o who_o have_v save_v we_o and_o call_v we_o with_o a_o holy_a call_n not_o according_a to_o our_o work_n but_o according_a to_o his_o own_o purpose_n &_o grace_n which_o be_v give_v to_o we_o through_o christ_n jesus_n before_o the_o world_n be_v phil._n 1._o 29._o unto_o you_o i●_n be_v give_v for_o christ_n that_o not_o only_o you_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o but_o also_o suffer_v for_o his_o sake_n rom._n 3.24_o we_o be_v justify_v free_o by_o grace_n tit._n 3.5_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o righteousness_n which_o we_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n he_o save_v us._n ezech._n 36._o 27._o i_o will_v cause_v you_o to_o walk_v in_o my_o statute_n rom._n 6.23_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v eternal_a life_n ii_o that_o astrology_n teach_v by_o the_o cast_n of_o nativity_n what_o man_n will_v be_v be_v ridiculous_a and_o impious_a because_o it_o determine_v that_o such_o shall_v be_v very_o like_a in_o life_n and_o conversation_n who_o god_n in_o his_o predestination_n have_v make_v unlike_o jacob_n and_o esau_n bear_v of_o the_o same_o parent_n and_o almost_o in_o the_o same_o moment_n of_o time_n for_o jacob_n hold_v esau_n by_o the_o heel_n as_o he_o be_v bear_v be_v of_o most_o unlike_a disposition_n and_o have_v diverse_a event_n the_o like_a may_v we_o see_v in_o all_o twin_n and_o other_o which_o be_v bear_v at_o the_o same_o time_n iii_o that_o god_n be_v most_o wise_a omnipotent_a just_a and_o merciful_a o_o the_o wonderful_a riches_n both_o of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n how_o unsearchable_a be_v his_o judgement_n and_o his_o way_n past_o find_v on_o it_o eph._n 1.5_o who_o have_v predestine_v we_o to_o be_v adopt_v through_o jesus_n christ_n unto_o himself_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n second_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v admonish_v i._o to_o fight_v against_o all_o doubt_n and_o diffidence_n of_o our_o salvation_n because_o it_o neither_o depend_v upon_o work_n nor_o faith_n but_o upon_o god_n decree_n which_o be_v immutable_a math._n 24.24_o luk._n 10.20_o rejoice_v that_o your_o name_n be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n rom._n 8.33_o who_o shall_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o god_n choose_v it_o be_v god_n that_o justify_v who_o shall_v condemn_v 2._o tim._n 2.19_o this_o teach_v that_o the_o anchor_n of_o hope_n must_v be_v fix_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o stability_n of_o the_o immutable_a good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n so_o that_o albeit_o our_o faith_n be_v so_o toss_v as_o that_o it_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o shipwreck_n nevertheless_o it_o must_v never_o sink_v to_o the_o bottom_n but_o even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o danger_n take_v hold_v upon_o repentance_n as_o on_o a_o board_n &_o so_o recover_v itself_o ii_o to_o humble_a our_o soul_n under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n for_o we_o be_v as_o clay_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o potter_n rom._n 9.21_o they_o through_o infidelity_n be_v break_v off_o but_o thou_o stand_v through_o faith_n be_v not_o high_o mind_v but_o fear_v iii_o to_o give_v all_o glory_n to_o god_n 2._o thess._n 2.13_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v thanks_n always_o to_o god_n for_o you_o brethren_n belove_v of_o the_o lord_n because_o that_o god_n have_v from_o the_o beginning_n choose_v you_o to_o salvation_n iv._o to_o bear_v cross_n patient_o rom._n 8.29_o those_o which_o he_o know_v before_o he_o have_v also_o predestinate_a to_o be_v make_v like_o to_o the_o image_n of_o his_o son_n this_o likeness_n
of_o all_o grace_n whereas_o faith_n be_v but_o the_o instrument_n as_o for_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o mention_n justification_n and_o salvation_n by_o faith_n they_o be_v to_o be_v restrain_v to_o man_n of_o year_n whereas_o infant_n die_v in_o their_o infancy_n and_o therefore_o want_v actual_a faith_n which_o none_o can_v have_v without_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o god_n will_v and_o word_n be_v no_o doubt_n save_v by_o some_o other_o special_a work_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n not_o know_v to_o us._n furthermore_o to_o believe_v signify_v two_o thing_n to_o conceive_v or_o understand_v any_o thing_n and_o withal_o to_o give_v assent_n unto_o it_o to_o be_v true_a and_o therefore_o in_o this_o place_n to_o believe_v signify_v to_o know_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o all_o the_o point_n of_o religion_n which_o follow_v be_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n here_o therefore_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o this_o clause_n i_o believe_v place_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o creed_n must_v be_v particular_o apply_v to_o all_o and_o every_o article_n follow_v for_o so_o the_o case_n stand_v that_o if_o faith_n fail_v in_o one_o main_a point_n it_o fail_v a_o man_n in_o all_o and_o therefore_o faith_n be_v say_v to_o be_v whole_o copulative_a it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o hold_v one_o article_n copulativa_fw-la but_o he_o that_o will_v hold_v any_o of_o they_o for_o his_o good_a must_v hold_v they_o all_o and_o he_o which_o hold_v they_o all_o in_o show_n of_o word_n if_o he_o overturn_v but_o one_o of_o they_o indeed_o he_o overturn_v they_o all_o again_o to_o believe_v be_v one_o thing_n and_o to_o believe_v in_o this_o or_o that_o be_v another_o thing_n and_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o three_o point_n or_o action_n of_o a_o believer_n i._o to_o know_v a_o thing_n ii_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o iii_o to_o put_v trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o it_o and_o in_o this_o order_n must_v these_o three_o action_n of_o faith_n be_v apply_v to_o every_o article_n follow_v which_o concern_v any_o of_o the_o person_n in_o trinity_n and_o this_o must_v be_v mark_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o special_a moment_n for_o always_o by_o add_v they_o to_o the_o word_n follow_v we_o do_v apply_v the_o article_n unto_o ourselves_o in_o a_o very_a comfortable_a manner_n as_o i_o believe_v in_o the_o father_n and_o do_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v my_o father_n and_o therefore_o i_o put_v my_o whole_a trust_n in_o he_o and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n now_o we_o come_v to_o the_o object_n of_o general_a faith_n which_o be_v either_o god_n or_o the_o church_n in_o handle_v of_o both_o which_o i_o will_v observe_v this_o order_n i._o i_o will_v speak_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o every_o article_n ii_o of_o the_o duty_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o learn_v thereby_o iii_o and_o last_o of_o the_o consolation_n which_o may_v be_v gather_v thence_o concern_v god_n three_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v and_o first_o by_o reason_n of_o manifold_a doubt_n that_o rise_v in_o our_o mind_n it_o may_v be_v demand_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n many_o reason_n may_v be_v use_v to_o resolve_v those_o that_o have_v scruple_n of_o conscience_n otherways_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n without_o all_o doubt_n as_o for_o those_o atheist_n which_o confident_o avouch_v there_o be_v no_o god_n by_o god_n law_n they_o ought_v to_o die_v the_o death_n nay_o the_o earth_n be_v to_o good_a for_o such_o to_o dwell_v on_o malefactor_n as_o thief_n and_o rebel_n for_o their_o offence_n have_v their_o reward_n of_o death_n but_o the_o offence_n of_o those_o which_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n be_v great_a and_o therefore_o deserve_v most_o cruel_a death_n the_o second_o point_n follow_v namely_o what_o god_n be_v 3●_n answer_n moses_n desire_v to_o see_v god_n face_n be_v not_o permit_v but_o to_o see_v his_o hinder_a part_n and_o therefore_o no_o man_n can_v be_v able_a to_o describe_v god_n by_o his_o nature_n but_o by_o his_o effect_n and_o property_n on_o this_o or_o such_o like_a manner_n god_n be_v a_o essence_n spiritual_a simple_a infinite_a most_o holy_a i_o say_v first_o of_o all_o that_o god_n be_v a_o essence_n to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v a_o thing_n absolute_o subsist_v in_o himself_o and_o by_o himself_o not_o receive_v his_o be_v from_o any_o other_o and_o herein_o he_o differ_v from_o all_o creature_n whatsoever_o which_o have_v subsist_v and_o be_v from_o he_o alone_o again_o i_o say_v he_o be_v a_o essence_n spiritual_a because_o he_o be_v not_o any_o kind_n of_o body_n neither_o have_v he_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o man_n or_o other_o creature_n but_o be_v in_o nature_n a_o spirit_n invisible_a not_o subject_a to_o any_o of_o man_n sense_n i_o add_v also_o that_o he_o be_v a_o simple_a essence_n because_o his_o nature_n admit_v no_o manner_n of_o composition_n of_o matter_n or_o form_n or_o part_n the_o creature_n be_v compound_v of_o diverse_a part_n and_o of_o variety_n of_o nature_n but_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o god_n for_o whatsoever_o thing_n he_o be_v he_o be_v the_o same_o by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o singular_a and_o indivisible_a essence_n furthermore_o he_o be_v infinite_a and_o that_o diverse_a way_n infinite_a in_o time_n without_o any_o beginning_n and_o without_o end_n infinite_a in_o place_n because_o he_o be_v every_o where_o and_o exclude_v no_o where_o within_o all_o place_n and_o forth_o of_o all_o place_n last_o he_o be_v most_o holy_a that_o be_v of_o infinite_a wisdom_n mercy_n love_n goodness_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o alone_o be_v right_o term_v most_o holy_a because_o holiness_n be_v of_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o god_n himself_o whereas_o among_o the_o most_o excellent_a creature_n it_o be_v otherwise_o for_o the_o creature_n itself_o be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o creature_n another_o thing_n thus_o we_o see_v what_o god_n be_v and_o to_o this_o effect_n god_n describe_v himself_o to_o be_v jehova_n elohim_n 1.17_o &_o paul_n describe_v he_o to_o be_v a_o king_n everlasting_a immortal_a invisible_a &_o only_o wise_a to_o who_o be_v due_a all_o honour_n and_o glory_n for_o ever_o the_o three_o point_n be_v touch_v the_o number_n of_o god_n namely_o whether_o there_o be_v more_o god_n than_o one_o or_o no._n ans._n there_o be_v not_o neither_o can_v there_o be_v any_o more_o god_n then_o one_o which_o point_n the_o creed_n avouch_v in_o say_v i_o believe_v in_o god_n not_o god_n and_o yet_o more_o plain_o the_o nicene_n creed_n and_o the_o creed_n of_o athanasius_n both_o of_o they_o explain_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n on_o this_o manner_n i_o believe_v in_o one_o god_n howesoever_o some_o in_o former_a time_n have_v erroneous_o hold_v that_o two_o god_n be_v the_o beginning_n of_o all_o thing_n one_o of_o good_a thing_n the_o other_o of_o evil_a thing_n other_o that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n another_o in_o the_o new_a other_o again_o namely_o the_o valentinian_o that_o there_o be_v thirty_o couple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o heathen_a people_n as_o augustine_n record_v worship_v thirty_o thousand_o god_n yet_o we_o that_o be_v member_n of_o god_n church_n must_v hold_v and_o believe_v one_o god_n alone_o and_o no_o more_o deut._n 4.39_o understand_v this_o day_n and_o consider_v in_o thy_o heart_n that_o jehovah_n he_o be_v god_n in_o heaven_n above_o and_o upon_o the_o earth_n beneath_o there_o be_v none_o other_o eph._n 4.6_o one_o god_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n if_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o the_o scripture_n mention_v many_o god_n because_o 82.6_o magistrate_n be_v call_v god_n 4.16_o moses_n be_v call_v aaron_n god_n 4.4_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o idol_n be_v call_v god_n the_o answer_n be_v this_o they_o be_v not_o proper_o or_o by_o nature_n god_n for_o in_o that_o respect_n there_o be_v only_o one_o god_n but_o they_o be_v so_o term_v in_o other_o respect_n magistrate_n be_v god_n because_o they_o be_v vicegerent_n place_v in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o true_a god_n to_o govern_v their_o subject_n moses_n be_v aaron_n god_n because_o he_o be_v in_o the_o room_n of_o god_n to_o reveal_v his_o will_n to_o aaron_n the_o devil_n be_v a_o god_n because_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o wicked_a will_v give_v the_o honour_n unto_o he_o which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o everliving_a god_n idol_n be_v call_v god_n because_o they_o be_v such_o in_o man_n conceit_n and_o opinion_n who_o esteem_v of_o they_o as_o of_o god_n therefore_o paul_n say_v a_o idol_n be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n 8.4_o that_o be_v nothing_o in_o nature_n subsist_v or_o nothing_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o divinity_n ascribe_v unto_o it_o to_o proceed_v forward_o
can_v take_v be_v this_o he_o be_v come_v to_o judgement_n let_v we_o therefore_o meet_v he_o and_o fall_v down_o before_o he_o and_o humble_v ourselves_o under_o his_o mighty_a hand_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o prophet_n will_v move_v the_o people_n to_o meet_v god_n by_o serious_a repentance_n by_o a_o reason_n frame_v thus_o if_o god_n who_o be_v their_o judge_n be_v able_a to_o create_v the_o wind_n and_o to_o form_v the_o mountain_n and_o to_o make_v the_o morning_n darkness_n then_o he_o be_v also_o able_a to_o make_v a_o eternal_a judgement_n for_o their_o confusion_n and_o therefore_o all_o such_o as_o be_v impenitent_a sinner_n let_v they_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o turn_v unto_o he_o &_o sure_o if_o man_n have_v grace_n to_o lay_v this_o to_o their_o heart_n they_o will_v not_o live_v so_o long_o in_o their_o sin_n without_o repentance_n as_o they_o do_v nay_o rather_o they_o will_v prepare_v themselves_o to_o meet_v he_o in_o the_o way_n before_o he_o come_v to_o judgement_n because_o he_o be_v a_o creator_n and_o therefore_o able_a to_o bring_v infinite_a punishment_n upon_o they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o nothing_o as_o he_o make_v they_o of_o nothing_o and_o let_v they_o know_v it_o whosoever_o they_o be_v that_o go_v forward_o in_o their_o sin_n that_o god_n the_o creator_n whensoever_o he_o will_v can_v open_v hell_n to_o devour_v they_o and_o that_o he_o can_v show_v himself_o as_o mighty_a in_o his_o judgement_n to_o man_n destruction_n as_o he_o be_v mighty_a in_o the_o begin_n in_o give_v we_o a_o be_v when_o we_o be_v nothing_o wherefore_o notable_a be_v the_o practice_n of_o david_n who_o inure_n himself_o to_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n by_o the_o consideration_n of_o his_o creation_n say_v i_o be_o fearful_o and_o wonderful_o make_v etc._n etc._n 139.14_o last_o those_o which_o have_v be_v impenitent_a sinner_n through_o all_o their_o life_n past_a must_v not_o only_o learn_v to_o repent_v for_o their_o sin_n but_o also_o endeavour_v to_o perform_v obedience_n unto_o god_n word_n god_n be_v a_o creator_n and_o the_o thing_n create_v shall_v in_o all_o respect_n be_v conformable_a to_o his_o will_n for_o david_n say_v 119.73_o thy_o hand_n have_v fashion_v i_o and_o frame_v i_o give_v i_o understand_v therefore_o that_o i_o may_v learn_v thy_o commandment_n and_o good_a reason_n for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n of_o any_o trade_n but_o he_o will_v fain_o have_v all_o that_o he_o make_v and_o devise_v to_o be_v use_v but_o yet_o so_o as_o the_o use_n thereof_o must_v be_v conformable_a to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o maker_n for_o this_o cause_n moses_n that_o faithful_a seruamt_v of_o god_n say_v that_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n deal_v wrongful_o with_o the_o lord_n why_o for_o he_o have_v create_v they_o and_o proportion_v they_o he_o be_v their_o father_n and_o be_v buy_v they_o yet_o they_o have_v dishonour_v he_o by_o corrupt_v themselves_o towards_o he_o by_o their_o vice_n all_o creature_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n do_v the_o will_n of_o the_o creator_n except_o man_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n for_o the_o sun_n the_o moon_n and_o the_o star_n they_o keep_v that_o course_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v they_o but_o man_n though_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n because_o god_n be_v his_o creator_n yet_o he_o rebel_n against_o he_o the_o potter_n if_o in_o temper_v his_o clay_n he_o can_v not_o make_v and_o frame_v it_o according_a to_o his_o mind_n at_o length_n he_o will_v dash_v it_o in_o piece_n so_o god_n he_o creat_v man_n not_o that_o he_o shall_v do_v his_o own_o will_n but_o god_n will_v and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o wrath_n will_v confound_v he_o eternal_o who_o soever_o he_o be_v that_o follow_v the_o lust_n of_o his_o own_o wicked_a heart_n and_o will_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o be_v conformable_a to_o god_n will_n but_o go_v on_o his_o rebellion_n without_o stay_n for_o this_o cause_n it_o stand_v every_o man_n in_o hand_n to_o yield_v himself_o pliable_a unto_o god_n will_n &_o to_o endeavour_n to_o obey_v it_o by_o keep_v a_o good_a conscience_n before_o god_n and_o all_o man_n and_o by_o walk_v faithful_o in_o his_o call_n lest_o the_o end_n be_v confusion_n if_o a_o man_n have_v a_o trade_n and_o other_o man_n come_v into_o his_o shop_n and_o use_v such_o tool_n and_o instrument_n as_o be_v there_o to_o wrong_v end_n he_o will_v in_o no_o wise_a brook_n it_o but_o take_v the_o abuse_n in_o great_a displeasure_n now_o the_o world_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o open_a shop_n in_o which_o god_n have_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o his_o glory_n and_o majesty_n and_o the_o creature_n of_o all_o kind_n be_v instrument_n appoint_v for_o excellent_a use_n and_o special_o man_n for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o his_o will_n and_o therefore_o when_o he_o rebel_n against_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o by_o sin_n put_v the_o creature_n to_o wrong_a end_n he_o can_v not_o but_o most_o grievous_o offend_v god_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o duty_n now_o in_o the_o three_o place_n follow_v the_o consolation_n unto_o god_n church_n and_o people_n first_o as_o s._n peter_n say_v 4.19_o god_n be_v a_o creator_n yea_o a_o faithful_a creator_n the_o property_n of_o a_o faithful_a creator_n be_v two_o i._o he_o will_v preserve_v his_o creature_n no_o man_n be_v so_o tender_a over_o any_o work_n as_o he_o that_o make_v it_o for_o he_o can_v abide_v to_o see_v it_o any_o way_n abuse_v god_n therefore_o be_v a_o faithful_a creator_n tender_o love_v all_o his_o creature_n so_o job_n reason_v with_o god_n that_o he_o will_v not_o cast_v he_o off_o 10.3_o because_o he_o be_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n ii_o god_n will_v bear_v with_o his_o creature_n to_o see_v whether_o it_o will_v be_v bring_v to_o any_o good_a end_n and_o use_v before_o he_o will_v destroy_v it_o and_o to_o use_v the_o former_a comparison_n the_o potter_n will_v turn_v and_o work_v the_o clay_n every_o way_n to_o make_v a_o vessel_n unto_o his_o mind_n but_o if_o it_o frame_v no_o way_n then_o will_v he_o cast_v it_o away_o and_o dash_v it_o against_o the_o wall_n and_o so_o god_n who_o create_v man_n still_o preserve_v he_o and_o use_v all_o mean_n to_o make_v he_o conformable_a to_o his_o will_n before_o he_o cast_v he_o off_o the_o lord_n do_v long_o strive_v with_o man_n in_o the_o old_a world_n to_o turn_v they_o from_o their_o wickedness_n but_o when_o nothing_o will_v serve_v they_o it_o be_v say_v it_o repent_v the_o lord_n that_o he_o make_v man_n on_o the_o earth_n 6.3.6_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n if_o we_o which_o be_v the_o creature_n of_o god_n shall_v rebel_v against_o this_o our_o creator_n it_o may_v be_v he_o will_v bear_v with_o we_o for_o a_o time_n but_o if_o we_o continue_v therein_o and_o do_v not_o turn_v to_o he_o by_o repentance_n he_o will_v bring_v upon_o we_o a_o final_a destruction_n both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n yet_o i_o say_v before_o he_o do_v this_o his_o manner_n be_v to_o try_v all_o mean_n to_o preserve_v we_o and_o turn_v we_o unto_o he_o and_o afterward_o if_o nothing_o will_v serve_v then_o will_v he_o show_v forth_o his_o power_n in_o man_n confusion_n and_o therefore_o it_o stand_v we_o in_o hand_n to_o look_v unto_o it_o betimes_o second_o look_v what_o power_n the_o lord_n do_v manifest_a in_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o same_o power_n he_o both_o can_v and_o will_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n in_o the_o beginning_n god_n make_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o word_n and_o so_o likewise_o he_o be_v able_a still_o to_o make_v by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o word_n of_o a_o wicked_a man_n that_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n a_o true_a and_o lively_a member_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n signify_v when_o he_o say_v ●●_o the_o lord_n that_o create_v the_o heaven_n and_o spread_v they_o abroad_o he_o that_o stretch_v forth_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o body_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n i_o the_o lord_n have_v call_v thou_o in_o righteousness_n this_o must_v not_o encourage_v evil_a man_n in_o their_o wickedness_n but_o it_o serve_v to_o comfort_v the_o people_n of_o god_n consider_v that_o the_o same_o god_n which_o once_o create_v they_o be_v also_o as_o able_a to_o save_v they_o and_o will_v show_v himself_o as_o mighty_a in_o their_o redemption_n as_o he_o be_v in_o their_o creation_n of_o nothing_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o creation_n in_o general_n now_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o come_v to_o the_o handle_n of_o the_o part_n thereof_o for_o it_o be_v not_o say_v bare_o that_o god_n be_v a_o creator_n but_o particular_o that_o he_o
thou_o have_v make_v he_o to_o have_v dominion_n in_o the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n and_o therefore_o god_n have_v create_v he_o in_o his_o image_n bid_v he_o rule_v over_o the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n over_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o over_o every_o beast_n that_o move_v upon_o the_o earth_n 2d_o &_o afterward_o he_o bring_v they_o all_o to_o he_o as_o to_o a_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o king_n to_o be_v name_v by_o he_o and_o answerable_o every_o creature_n in_o his_o kind_n give_v reverence_n and_o subjection_n unto_o man_n before_o his_o fall_n as_o unto_o their_o lord_n and_o king_n where_o by_o the_o way_n we_o must_v remember_v that_o when_o we_o see_v any_o creature_n that_o be_v hurtful_a and_o noisome_a unto_o man_n and_o will_v rather_o devour_v then_o obey_v he_o it_o must_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o our_o sin_n for_o by_o creation_n we_o be_v make_v lord_n and_o king_n over_o all_o creature_n and_o they_o dare_v not_o but_o reverence_n and_o obey_v we_o but_o the_o rebellion_n of_o man_n unto_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o rebellion_n of_o the_o creature_n unto_o us._n the_o three_o part_n of_o man_n dignity_n by_o creation_n be_v that_o before_o his_o fall_n he_o have_v a_o wonderful_a beauty_n and_o majesty_n above_o all_o creature_n in_o his_o body_n whereupon_o david_n say_v the_o lord_n have_v crown_v he_o with_o glory_n and_o worship_n 8._o and_o in_o the_o renew_v of_o the_o covenant_n with_o noah_n god_n say_v 9.2_o that_o the_o dread_n and_o fear_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v upon_o all_o creature_n which_o now_o though_o it_o be_v but_o small_a yet_o do_v it_o plain_o show_v what_o be_v the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n of_o man_n person_n at_o the_o first_o the_o four_o dignity_n of_o man_n estate_n in_o innocence_n be_v that_o his_o labour_n be_v without_o pain_n or_o weariness_n if_o he_o have_v never_o fall_v he_o shall_v have_v labour_v in_o the_o garden_n but_o so_o as_o he_o shall_v never_o have_v be_v weary_v therewith_o for_o when_o adam_n be_v fall_v god_n say_v in_o the_o speate_n of_o thy_o face_n shall_v thou_o eat_v thy_o bread_n now_o if_o the_o pain_n in_o labour_n come_v after_o as_o a_o curse_n upon_o man_n for_o his_o transgression_n then_o before_o his_o fall_n man_n feel_v no_o pain_n in_o his_o affair_n and_o in_o these_o four_o thing_n consist_v man_n dignity_n which_o he_o have_v in_o the_o creation_n now_o in_o the_o three_o follow_v man_n calling_n before_o his_o fall_n which_o be_v twofold_a i._o particular_a ii_o general_n man_n particular_a calling_n be_v to_o come_v into_o the_o garden_n of_o eden_n to_o keep_v it_o and_o to_o dress_v the_o tree_n and_o fruit_n thereof_o this_o show_v unto_o we_o a_o good_a lesson_n that_o every_o man_n must_v have_v a_o particular_a call_n wherein_o he_o ought_v to_o walk_v and_o therefore_o such_o as_o spend_v their_o time_n idle_o in_o game_a and_o vain_a delight_n have_v much_o to_o answer_v to_o god_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n this_o will_v not_o excuse_v a_o man_n to_o say_v they_o that_o he_o have_v land_n &_o live_v to_o maintain_v himself_o and_o therefore_o be_v to_o live_v as_o he_o list_v for_o even_o adam_n in_o his_o innocence_n have_v all_o thing_n at_o his_o will_n &_o want_v nothing_o yet_o even_o then_o god_n employ_v he_o in_o a_o call_n therefore_o none_o must_v be_v exempt_v every_o man_n both_o high_a &_o low_o must_v walk_v in_o his_o proper_a call_n adans_n general_a call_n be_v to_o worship_v his_o creator_n to_o which_o he_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o right_n of_o creation_n consider_v the_o moral_a law_n be_v write_v in_o his_o heart_n by_o nature_n which_o be_v signify_v in_o the_o decalogue_n where_o the_o lord_n require_v worship_n and_o obedience_n of_o his_o people_n because_o he_o be_v jehovah_n 10.2_o that_o be_v one_o which_o have_v be_v in_o himself_o and_o give_v be_v to_o all_o man_n by_o creation_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o this_o point_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v three_o thing_n i._o the_o place_n where_o adam_n do_v worship_n ii_o the_o time_n iii_o the_o sacrament_n for_o the_o first_o god_n ever_o since_o the_o beginning_n have_v a_o place_n where_o he_o will_v be_v worship_v and_o it_o be_v call_v god_n house_n which_o then_o be_v the_o garden_n of_o eden_n 28.17_o for_o it_o be_v unto_o adam_n a_o place_n appoint_v by_o god_n for_o his_o worship_n as_o church-assembly_n be_v unto_o we_o where_o also_o the_o lord_n at_o some_o time_n do_v in_o a_o special_a manner_n show_v himself_o unto_o his_o creature_n touch_v the_o time_n of_o god_n worship_n it_o be_v the_o seven_o day_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o creation_n the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o here_o we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o sabbath_n be_v moral_a some_o indeed_o do_v plead_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o ceremony_n yet_o false_o for_o it_o be_v ordain_v before_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n at_o which_o time_n ceremony_n signify_v sanctification_n have_v no_o place_n nay_o mark_v further_o adam_n in_o his_o innocence_n be_v not_o clog_v with_o sin_n as_o we_o be_v and_o yet_o then_o he_o have_v a_o set_a sabbath_n to_o worship_n god_n his_o creator_n and_o therefore_o much_o more_o need_n have_v every_o one_o of_o we_o of_o a_o sabbath_n day_n wherein_o we_o may_v sever_v ourselves_o from_o the_o work_n of_o our_o calling_n and_o the_o work_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n and_o godly_a meditation_n of_o our_o creation_n this_o point_n must_v be_v learn_v of_o we_o for_o when_o no_o occasion_n be_v offer_v of_o business_n than_o man_n will_v formal_o seem_v to_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n but_o if_o there_o come_v occasion_n of_o break_v the_o sabbath_n as_o traffic_v game_n and_o vain_a show_n than_o sabbath_n farewell_n man_n will_v have_v their_o pleasure_n let_v they_o worship_n god_n that_o will_n but_o let_v we_o remember_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n that_o whosoever_o continue_v in_o the_o breach_n of_o this_o law_n be_v moral_a god_n will_v no_o less_o power_n forth_o his_o punishment_n upon_o they_o then_o for_o the_o breach_n of_o any_o other_o commandment_n the_o consideration_n whereof_o must_v move_v every_o man_n to_o a_o reverend_a sanctify_a of_o the_o lord_n day_n now_o for_o adam_n sacrament_n they_o be_v two_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n and_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n these_o do_v serve_v to_o exercise_n adam_n in_o obedience_n unto_o god_n the_o tree_n of_o life_n be_v to_o signify_v assurance_n of_o life_n for_o ever_o if_o he_o do_v keep_v god_n commandment_n the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a be_v a_o sacrament_n to_o show_v unto_o he_o that_o if_o he_o do_v transgress_v god_n commandment_n he_o shall_v die_v and_o it_o be_v so_o call_v because_o it_o do_v signify_v that_o if_o he_o transgress_v this_o law_n he_o shall_v have_v experience_n both_o of_o good_a and_o evil_n in_o himself_o now_o in_o the_o four_o place_n follow_v the_o end_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n which_o be_v twofold_a first_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o creature_n to_o who_o god_n may_v make_v manifest_a himself_o who_o in_o a_o special_a manner_n shall_v set_v forth_o and_o acknowledge_v his_o wisdom_n goodness_n mercy_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o of_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o they_o as_o also_o his_o providence_n in_o govern_v the_o same_o second_o god_n have_v decree_v to_o glorify_v his_o name_n in_o show_v his_o mercy_n and_o justice_n upon_o his_o creature_n hereupon_o in_o time_n creat_v man_n to_o show_v his_o mercy_n in_o the_o salvation_n of_o some_o and_o to_o show_v his_o justice_n in_o the_o just_a and_o deserve_a damnation_n of_o other_o some_o and_o therefore_o he_o have_v appoint_v the_o creation_n special_o of_o man_n to_o be_v a_o mean_n of_o manifestation_n and_o beginning_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o eternal_a counsel_n thus_o much_o concern_v man_n creation_n in_o general_n the_o special_a part_n of_o man_n be_v two_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v he_o stand_v on_o these_o two_o part_n be_v this_o some_o creature_n make_v before_o he_o be_v only_o bodily_a as_o beast_n fish_n fowl_n some_o spiritual_a as_o angel_n now_o man_n be_v both_o spiritual_a in_o regard_n of_o his_o soul_n corporal_a and_o sensible_a in_o regard_n of_o his_o body_n that_o nothing_o may_v be_v want_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o nature_n if_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o man_n consist_v of_o three_o part_n body_n soul_n and_o spirit_n because_o paul_n pray_v that_o the_o thessalonian_n may_v be_v sanctify_v in_o body_n soul_n and_o
as_o adam_n be_v and_o therefore_o his_o sin_n be_v personal_a whereas_o adam_n be_v not_o yet_o this_o which_o i_o say_v must_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n but_o only_o of_o the_o first_o from_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n spring_v original_a sin_n so_o common_o call_v not_o only_o as_o a_o fruit_n thereof_o but_o also_o as_o a_o just_a punishment_n of_o it_o and_o after_o the_o foresay_a fall_n it_o be_v in_o adam_n and_o his_o posterity_n as_o the_o mother_n and_o root_n of_o all_o other_o sin_n yet_o with_o this_o distinction_n that_o actual_a sin_n be_v first_o in_o adam_n and_o then_o come_v original_a but_o in_o we_o first_o be_v original_a sin_n and_o then_o after_o follow_v actual_a original_a sin_n be_v term_v diverse_o in_o scripture_n as_o the_o flesh_n the_o old_a man_n because_o it_o be_v in_o we_o before_o grace_n ●●_o concupiscence_n sin_n that_o be_v ready_a to_o compass_v we_o about_o the_o sin_v sin_n and_o it_o be_v term_v original_a because_o it_o have_v be_v in_o man_n nature_n ever_o since_o the_o fall_n and_o because_o it_o be_v in_o every_o man_n at_o the_o very_a instant_n of_o his_o conception_n and_o birth_n as_o david_n plain_o say_v 51.5_o behold_v i_o be_v bear_v in_o iniquity_n and_o in_o sin_n have_v my_o mother_n conceive_v i_o not_o mean_v proper_o his_o parent_n sin_n for_o he_o be_v bear_v in_o lawful_a marriage_n but_o his_o own_o hereditary_a sin_n whereof_o he_o be_v guilty_a even_o in_o his_o mother_n womb_n but_o let_v we_o a_o little_a search_n the_o nature_n of_o it_o consider_v it_o have_v place_n in_o man_n it_o must_v be_v either_o the_o substance_n of_o body_n or_o soul_n or_o the_o faculty_n of_o the_o substance_n or_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o faculty_n now_o it_o can_v be_v the_o substance_n of_o man_n corrupt_v for_o then_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o shall_v also_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o sin_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n shall_v as_o well_o have_v need_n of_o a_o redeemer_n as_o other_o man_n and_o again_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n shall_v not_o be_v immortal_a neither_o be_v it_o any_o one_o or_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o man_n for_o every_o one_o of_o they_o as_o namely_o the_o understanding_n will_n affection_n and_o all_o other_o power_n of_o body_n or_o soul_n be_v in_o man_n from_o the_o first_o creation_n whereas_o sin_n be_v not_o before_o the_o fall_n wherefore_o it_o remain_v that_o original_a sin_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o disorder_n or_o evil_a disposition_n in_o all_o the_o faculty_n and_o inclination_n of_o man_n whereby_o they_o be_v all_o carry_v inordinate_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o subject_n or_o place_n of_o this_o sin_n be_v not_o any_o part_n of_o man_n but_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o soul_n for_o first_o of_o all_o the_o natural_a appetite_n to_o meat_n and_o drink_v and_o the_o power_n of_o nourish_v be_v great_o corrupt_v as_o appear_v by_o disease_n ache_n surfeit_n but_o special_o by_o the_o abuse_n of_o meat_n and_o drink_v second_o the_o outward_a sense_n be_v as_o corrupt_v 119._o and_o that_o make_v david_n to_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v turn_v his_o eye_n from_o behold_v of_o vanity_n and_o saint_n john_n to_o say_v 2.16_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n be_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o lust_n of_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o pride_n of_o life_n three_o touch_v the_o understanding_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n say_v 3.5_o that_o the_o frame_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v only_o evil_a continual_o so_o as_o we_o be_v not_o able_a of_o ourselves_o to_o think_v a_o good_a thought_n and_o therefore_o withal_o the_o will_n of_o man_n and_o his_o affection_n be_v answerable_o corrupt_a and_o hereupon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o we_o must_v renounce_v our_o own_o will_n last_o all_o man_n strength_n in_o good_a thing_n be_v nothing_o out_o of_o christ._n the_o propagation_n of_o this_o sin_n be_v the_o derive_v of_o it_o from_o adam_n to_o all_o his_o posterity_n whereby_o it_o run_v as_o a_o leprosy_n over_o all_o mankind_n but_o in_o what_o manner_n this_o propagation_n be_v make_v it_o be_v hard_o to_o define_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o divine_n be_v that_o it_o may_v be_v do_v two_o way_n the_o first_o be_v this_o god_n when_o he_o create_v adam_n in_o the_o beginning_n set_v down_o this_o appointment_n and_o order_n touch_v the_o estate_n of_o man_n that_o whatsoever_o adam_n receive_v of_o god_n he_o shall_v re●●ive_v it_o not_o only_o for_o himself_o but_o for_o his_o posterity_n and_o whatsoever_o grace_n of_o god_n he_o lose_v he_o shall_v loose_v not_o only_o to_o himself_o but_o to_o all_o his_o posterity_n and_o hereupon_o adam_n when_o he_o sin_v he_o deprive_v first_o of_o all_o himself_o and_o then_o second_o all_o his_o posterity_n of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n because_o all_o mankind_n be_v in_o ●is_n loin_n when_o he_o sin_v now_o then_o upon_o the_o former_a appointment_n when_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v create_v and_o place_v in_o the_o body_n god_n forsake_v they_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o soul_n or_o the_o faculty_n but_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o own_o image_n whereof_o the_o soul_n be_v deprive_v after_o which_o follow_v the_o defect_n or_o want_n of_o righteousness_n which_o be_v original_a sin_n and_o god_n in_o deprive_v man_n of_o that_o which_o adam_n lose_v be_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o author_n or_o maintainer_n of_o sin_n but_o a_o just_a judge_n for_o this_o deprivation_n of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n so_o farforth_o as_o it_o be_v inflict_v by_o he_o upon_o mankind_n ●2_n it_o must_v be_v conceive_v as_o a_o deserve_a punishment_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n and_o all_o man_n in_o he_o which_o punishment_n they_o pull_v upon_o themselves_o the_o second_o way_n be_v that_o the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o parent_n in_o generation_n by_o the_o body_n for_o as_o sweet_a oil_n pour_v into_o a_o fusty_a vessel_n lose_v his_o pureness_n and_o be_v infect_v by_o the_o vessel_n so_o the_o soul_n create_v good_a &_o put_v into_o the_o corrupt_a body_n receive_v contagion_n thence_o and_o this_o conjunction_n of_o the_o pure_a soul_n with_o the_o corrupt_a body_n be_v not_o against_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n because_o it_o be_v a_o just_a punishment_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n in_o adam_n it_o may_v be_v this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v will_n not_o satisfy_v the_o mind_n of_o all_o yet_o if_o any_o will_v be_v curious_a to_o search_v further_o into_o this_o point_n let_v they_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o other_o matter_n which_o more_o concern_v they_o to_o look_v unto_o when_o a_o man_n house_n be_v on_o fire_n there_o be_v no_o time_n then_o to_o inquire_v how_o and_o which_o way_n and_o whence_o the_o fire_n come_v but_o our_o duty_n be_v with_o all_o speed_n and_o expedition_n to_o use_v all_o good_a mean_n to_o stay_v it_o and_o so_o consider_v that_o our_o whole_a nature_n be_v real_o infect_v and_o poison_v with_o the_o loathsome_a contagion_n of_o original_a sin_n which_o be_v a_o weight_n sufficient_a to_o press_v down_o the_o soul_n to_o the_o gulf_n of_o hell_n it_o stand_v we_o in_o hand_n a_o thousand_o fold_n more_o to_o use_v the_o mean_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v take_v away_o then_o to_o dispute_v how_o it_o come_v some_o may_v allege_v against_o the_o propagation_n of_o sin_n that_o holy_a parent_n beget_v holy_a child_n which_o be_v void_a of_o original_a sin_n because_o it_o stand_v not_o with_o reason_n that_o parent_n shall_v convey_v that_o to_o their_o child_n which_o they_o themselves_o want_v namely_o the_o guilt_n and_o the_o punishment_n and_o the_o fault_n of_o sin_n in_o part_n answ._n i._o man_n be_v not_o in_o this_o life_n perfect_o holy_a for_o sanctification_n be_v but_o in_o part_n and_o therefore_o they_o can_v not_o possible_o beget_v child_n pure_a from_o all_o sin_n second_o parent_n beget_v child_n as_o they_o be_v man_n and_o not_o as_o they_o be_v holy_a man_n and_o by_o generation_n they_o derive_v unto_o their_o child_n nature_n with_o the_o corruption_n thereof_o and_o not_o grace_v which_o be_v above_o nature_n take_v any_o corn_n yea_o the_o fine_a wheat_n that_o ever_o be_v winnow_v it_o as_o clean_o as_o possible_o may_v be_v afterward_o sow_v it_o weed_n it_o also_o when_o it_o be_v sow_v and_o reap_v it_o in_o due_a time_n and_o carry_v it_o to_o the_o barn_n when_o it_o be_v thresht_v you_o shall_v find_v as_o much_o chaff_n in_o it_o as_o ever_o be_v before_o and_o why_o because_o god_n have_v set_v this_o order_n in_o the_o
sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n christ_n jesus_n come_v to_o pour_v oil_n into_o our_o wound_n christ_n come_v to_o set_v they_o at_o liberty_n which_o be_v in_o prison_n and_o to_o place_v they_o in_o freedom_n that_o be_v in_o bondage_n now_o a_o man_n can_v pour_v oil_n into_o a_o wound_n before_o there_o be_v a_o wound_n or_o before_o it_o be_v open_v and_o we_o feel_v the_o smart_n of_o it_o and_o how_o can_v we_o be_v set_v at_o liberty_n by_o christ_n except_o we_o feel_v ourselves_o to_o be_v in_o bondage_n under_o hell_n death_n and_o damnation_n when_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n be_v upon_o the_o sea_n in_o a_o great_a tempest_n they_o cry_v master_n save_v we_o we_o perish_v 8.25_o so_o no_o man_n can_v hearty_o say_v i_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v my_o saviour_n before_o he_o feel_v that_o in_o himself_o he_o be_v utter_o lose_v and_o cast_v away_o without_o his_o help_n but_o after_o that_o we_o perceive_v ourselves_o to_o be_v in_o danger_n and_o to_o be_v overwhelm_v in_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n than_o we_o cry_v out_o with_o the_o disciple_n lord_n jesus_n save_v we_o we_o perish_v many_o protestant_n in_o these_o day_n hold_v christ_n to_o be_v their_o saviour_n but_o it_o be_v only_o formable_o from_o the_o tooth_n outward_a and_o no_o further_o for_o they_o be_v never_o touch_v with_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o spiritual_a misery_n that_o they_o may_v say_v with_o daniel_n shame_n and_o confusion_n belong_v unto_o we_o and_o with_o the_o publican_n i_o be_o a_o sinner_n lord_n be_v merciful_a to_o i_o and_o therefore_o the_o conclusion_n be_v this_o that_o if_o we_o will_v have_v christ_n to_o be_v our_o saviour_n we_o must_v first_o believe_v that_o in_o ourselves_o we_o be_v utter_o lose_v and_o so_o must_v that_o place_n be_v understand_v where_o christ_n say_v he_o be_v not_o send_v but_o to_o the_o lose_a sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n that_o be_v to_o those_o which_o in_o their_o own_o sense_n and_o feeling_n be_v lose_v in_o themselves_o second_o if_o christ_n be_v a_o saviour_n than_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v so_o but_o how_o shall_v we_o do_v this_o i_o answer_v thus_o a_o man_n be_v take_v to_o be_v a_o skilful_a physician_n by_o this_o that_o many_o patient_n come_v unto_o he_o and_o seek_v for_o help_v at_o his_o hand_n and_o so_o shall_v it_o be_v with_o christ._n but_o alas_o the_o case_n be_v otherwise_o every_o man_n can_v talk_v of_o christ_n but_o few_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v a_o saviour_n by_o seek_v to_o he_o for_o their_o salvation_n because_o they_o judge_v themselves_o righteous_a and_o feel_v not_o themselves_o to_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o the_o help_n of_o christ._n nay_o which_o be_v more_o if_o a_o man_n be_v know_v that_o can_v cure_v strange_a disease_n man_n will_v seek_v to_o he_o by_o sea_n and_o land_n and_o sell_v both_o good_n and_o land_n to_o get_v help_n at_o his_o hand_n even_o so_o if_o man_n be_v persuade_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o perfect_a saviour_n and_o that_o they_o be_v sick_a and_o utter_o unable_a to_o be_v save_v without_o he_o they_o will_v never_o rest_v nor_o be_v in_o quiet_a but_o seek_v unto_o he_o for_o his_o help_n and_o cry_v with_o david_n o_o lord_n say_v unto_o my_o soul_n that_o thou_o be_v my_o salvation_n 3_o the_o woman_n that_o be_v disease_v with_o a_o issue_n of_o blood_n come_v behind_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o when_o she_o have_v but_o touch_v he_o 9.20_o she_o be_v heal_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n if_o we_o shall_v seek_v to_o come_v to_o christ_n and_o do_v but_o touch_v his_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o faith_n the_o issue_n &_o the_o bleed_a wound_n of_o our_o soul_n shall_v be_v dry_v up_o when_o a_o man_n that_o have_v be_v sick_a eight_o and_o thirty_o year_n be_v come_v to_o the_o pool_n of_o bethesda_n he_o be_v fain_o to_o lie_v there_o uncured_a 5.7_o because_o when_o the_o angel_n trouble_v the_o water_n evermore_o some_o step_v before_o he_o but_o if_o we_o will_v seek_v to_o christ_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n no_o man_n shall_v prevent_v we_o or_o step_v before_o us._n and_o if_o we_o find_v ourselves_o to_o be_v so_o lade_v with_o the_o burden_n of_o our_o sin_n that_o we_o can_v not_o draw_v near_o unto_o he_o let_v we_o then_o do_v as_o the_o palsy_n man_n do_v 2.4_o he_o get_v four_o man_n to_o carry_v he_o on_o their_o shoulder_n to_o the_o place_n where_o christ_n be_v and_o when_o they_o can_v not_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o press_n of_o people_n enter_v into_o the_o house_n they_o open_v the_o roof_n and_o let_v he_o down_o in_o his_o bed_n by_o cord_n to_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v be_v heal_v and_o so_o let_v we_o use_v the_o help_n of_o such_o as_o be_v godly_a that_o by_o their_o instruction_n and_o consolation_n they_o may_v as_o it_o be_v put_v to_o their_o shoulder_n and_o by_o their_o prayer_n as_o with_o cord_n bring_v we_o to_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v eternal_a salvation_n be_v otherwise_o dead_a in_o sin_n and_o subject_n to_o damnation_n last_o whereas_o joseph_n and_o marie_n give_v this_o name_n not_o at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n but_o at_o the_o appointment_n of_o god_n himself_o this_o minister_n a_o good_a instruction_n to_o all_o parent_n touch_v the_o name_n of_o their_o child_n when_o they_o be_v baptize_v that_o they_o be_v with_o care_n and_o deliberation_n to_o give_v convenient_a name_n unto_o they_o which_o may_v put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o duty_n either_o to_o god_n or_o man_n this_o be_v worthy_a of_o our_o observation_n for_o many_o care_v not_o how_o they_o name_v their_o child_n yea_o it_o be_v at_o this_o day_n and_o ever_o have_v be_v that_o some_o give_v such_o name_n to_o they_o as_o that_o at_o the_o very_a rehearse_n thereof_o laughter_n ensue_v but_o this_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v so_o for_o the_o name_n be_v give_v unto_o child_n at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o baptism_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n of_o his_o church_n and_o angel_n even_o then_o when_o they_o be_v to_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n therefore_o though_o we_o do_v not_o place_v religion_n in_o title_n or_o name_n yet_o nevertheless_o a_o wise_a &_o godly_a choice_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v to_o be_v have_v that_o the_o name_n impose_v may_v be_v in_o stead_n of_o instruction_n and_o admonition_n to_o the_o party_n name_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n name_n be_v give_v either_o by_o prophetical_a instinct_n or_o according_a to_o the_o event_n of_o thing_n which_o come_v to_o pass_v about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o birth_n of_o child_n 1.5.9_o or_o they_o be_v borrow_v from_o the_o holy_a ancetour_n to_o put_v the_o posterity_n in_o mind_n to_o follow_v their_o step_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o duty_n now_o follow_v the_o consolation_n that_o god_n church_n &_o people_n reap_v from_o this_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v our_o saviour_n when_o as_o all_o mankind_n be_v include_v under_o sin_n and_o condemnation_n than_o the_o lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o and_o give_v unto_o man_n the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n in_o which_o he_o promise_v that_o his_o own_o son_n shall_v be_v our_o redeemer_n this_o be_v a_o great_a and_o unspeakable_a comfort_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o that_o the_o angel_n so_o great_o rejoice_v herein_o when_o christ_n be_v bear_v behold_v say_v they_o i_o bring_v you_o tiding_n of_o great_a joy_n that_o shall_v be_v to_o all_o the_o people_n 2.10.11_o that_o be_v that_o unto_o you_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o city_n of_o david_n a_o saviour_n which_o be_v christ_n the_o lord_n now_o if_o they_o rejoice_v thus_o exceed_o at_o christ_n birth_n who_o be_v not_o their_o saviour_n because_o they_o stand_v not_o in_o need_n to_o be_v redeem_v then_o much_o more_o ought_v the_o church_n of_o god_n to_o rejoice_v herein_o who_o it_o do_v principal_o concern_v and_o no_o marvel_v for_o if_o we_o have_v want_v this_o bless_a saviour_n it_o have_v be_v better_a to_o have_v be_v a_o bruit_n beast_n or_o any_o other_o creature_n than_o a_o man_n for_o the_o death_n of_o a_o beast_n be_v the_o end_n of_o his_o woe_n but_o the_o death_n of_o a_o man_n without_o a_o saviour_n be_v the_o begin_n of_o endless_a misery_n satan_n and_o his_o angel_n be_v fall_v and_o have_v no_o saviour_n but_o when_o man_n be_v fall_v god_n of_o his_o mercy_n deal_v not_o so_o with_o he_o but_o give_v his_o own_o son_n to_o restore_v he_o to_o a_o better_a
any_o of_o god_n creature_n or_o ordinance_n we_o must_v sanctify_v they_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o his_o word_n and_o by_o prayer_n the_o reason_n be_v this_o because_o he_o be_v lord_n over_o all_o and_o therefore_o from_o his_o word_n we_o must_v fetch_v direction_n to_o teach_v we_o whether_o we_o may_v use_v they_o or_o not_o and_o when_o and_o how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v use_v and_o second_o we_o must_v pray_v to_o he_o that_o he_o will_v give_v we_o liberty_n and_o grace_n to_o use_v they_o aright_o in_o holy_a manner_n also_o we_o be_v so_o to_o use_v the_o creature_n and_o ordinance_n of_o god_n as_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o our_o do_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o we_o use_v that_o which_o be_v the_o lord_n not_o our_o own_o we_o be_v but_o steward_n over_o they_o and_o we_o must_v come_v to_o a_o reckon_n for_o the_o stewardship_n have_v thou_o learning_n then_o employ_v it_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n boast_v not_o of_o it_o as_o though_o it_o be_v thou_o own_o have_v thou_o any_o other_o gift_n or_o blessing_n of_o god_n be_v it_o wisdom_n strength_n riches_n honour_n favour_n or_o whatsoever_o then_o look_v thou_o use_v it_o so_o as_o thou_o may_v be_v always_o ready_a to_o make_v a_o good_a account_n thereof_o unto_o christ._n last_o every_o one_o must_v in_o such_o manner_n lead_v his_o life_n in_o this_o world_n that_o at_o the_o day_n of_o death_n he_o may_v with_o cheerfulness_n surrender_v and_o give_v up_o his_o soul_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o lord_n and_o say_v with_o steven_n 7._o lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o soul_n for_o consider_v this_o with_o thyself_o that_o thy_o soul_n be_v none_o of_o thou_o own_o but_o he_o who_o have_v buy_v it_o with_o a_o price_n and_o therefore_o thou_o must_v so_o order_v and_o keep_v it_o as_o that_o thou_o may_v in_o good_a manner_n restore_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n at_o the_o end_n of_o thy_o life_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v borrow_v a_o thing_n of_o his_o neighbour_n and_o afterward_o hurt_v it_o and_o make_v a_o spoil_n of_o it_o he_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o bring_v it_o again_o to_o the_o owner_n in_o that_o manner_n and_o if_o he_o do_v the_o owner_n himself_o will_v not_o receive_v it_o ungodly_a man_n in_o this_o life_n do_v so_o stain_v their_o soul_n with_o sin_n that_o they_o can_v never_o be_v able_a willing_o to_o give_v they_o up_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n at_o the_o day_n of_o death_n and_o if_o they_o will_v yet_o god_n accept_v they_o not_o but_o cast_v they_o quite_o away_o we_o must_v therefore_o labour_v so_o to_o live_v in_o the_o world_n that_o with_o a_o joyful_a heart_n at_o the_o day_n of_o death_n we_o may_v commend_v our_o soul_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n jesus_n who_o give_v they_o unto_o us._n this_o be_v a_o hard_a thing_n to_o be_v do_v and_o he_o that_o will_v do_v it_o true_o must_v first_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o own_o sin_n which_o a_o man_n can_v never_o have_v without_o true_a &_o unfeigned_a faith_n and_o repentance_n wherefore_o while_o we_o have_v time_n let_v we_o purge_v and_o cleanse_v our_o soul_n and_o body_n that_o they_o may_v come_v home_o again_o to_o god_n in_o good_a plight_n and_o here_o all_o governor_n must_v be_v put_v in_o mind_n that_o they_o have_v a_o high_a lord_n that_o they_o may_v not_o oppress_v or_o deal_v hardly_o with_o their_o inferior_n this_o be_v paul_n reason_n 6.9_o you_o master_n say_v he_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n unto_o your_o servant_n put_v away_o threaten_v and_o know_v that_o even_o your_o master_n be_v also_o in_o heaven_n neither_o be_v there_o respect_n of_o person_n with_o he_o inferior_n again_o must_v remember_v to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o governor_n especial_o of_o magistrate_n for_o they_o be_v set_v over_o we_o by_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o king_n christ_n jesus_n as_o paul_n say_v ●_o let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n for_o there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n that_o be_v ordain_v be_v of_o god_n and_o again_o 6.5_o servant_n be_v obedient_a to_o your_o master_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a in_o singleness_n of_o your_o heart_n as_o unto_o christ._n the_o comfort_n which_o god_n church_n may_v reap_v hence_o be_v very_o great_a for_o if_o christ_n be_v the_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o our_o lord_n especial_o who_o he_o have_v create_v and_o redeem_v we_o need_v not_o to_o fear_v what_o the_o devil_n or_o wicked_a man_n can_v do_v unto_o us._n if_o christ_n be_v on_o our_o side_n who_o can_v be_v against_o we_o we_o need_v not_o fear_v they_o that_o can_v destroy_v the_o body_n and_o do_v no_o more_o 10.28_o but_o we_o must_v cast_v our_o fear_n on_o he_o that_o be_v lord_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o can_v cast_v both_o to_o hell_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o four_o title_n now_o follow_v christ_n incarnation_n in_o these_o word_n conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o they_o contain_v in_o they_o one_o of_o the_o most_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o godliness_n as_o paul_n say_v 3.16_o without_o controversy_n great_a be_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n which_o be_v god_n be_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n justify_v in_o the_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o we_o may_v proceed_v in_o order_n in_o handle_v they_o i_o will_v first_o speak_v of_o the_o incarnation_n general_o and_o then_o after_o come_v to_o the_o part_n thereof_o in_o general_n we_o be_v to_o propound_v five_o question_n the_o answer_v whereof_o will_v be_v very_o needful_a to_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o doctrine_n follow_v the_o first_o question_n be_v who_o be_v incarnate_v or_o make_v man_n answ._n the_o second_o person_n in_o trinity_n the_o son_n of_o god_n alone_o as_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o this_o article_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n s._n john_n say_v 1.14_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o the_o angel_n say_v 1.35_o the_o holy_a one_o which_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o paul_n say_v 2.3_o that_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o there_o be_v sundry_a reason_n why_o the_o second_o person_n shall_v rather_o be_v incarnate_a than_o any_o other_o i._o by_o who_o the_o father_n create_v all_o thing_n and_o man_n especial_o by_o he_o man_n be_v fall_v be_v to_o be_v redeem_v and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v recreated_a now_o man_n be_v at_o the_o first_o create_v of_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v redeem_v by_o he_o ii_o it_o be_v most_o convenient_a that_o he_o which_o be_v the_o essential_a image_n of_o the_o father_n shall_v take_v man_n nature_n that_o he_o may_v restore_v the_o image_n of_o god_n lose_v and_o deface_v in_o man_n 1._o but_o the_o second_o person_n be_v the_o essential_a image_n of_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o he_o alone_o must_v take_v man_n nature_n iii_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o that_o person_n which_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o we_o which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n yea_o the_o son_n of_o wrath_n shall_v again_o by_o grace_n be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n now_o the_o second_o person_n alone_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o nature_n not_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o for_o the_o father_n he_o can_v not_o be_v incarnate_a for_o to_o take_v flesh_n be_v to_o be_v send_v of_o a_o other_o but_o the_o father_n can_v not_o be_v send_v of_o any_o person_n because_o he_o be_v from_o none_o again_o if_o the_o father_n be_v incarnate_a he_o shall_v be_v father_n to_o he_o which_o be_v by_o nature_n god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o a_o creature_n namely_o the_o virgin_n marie_n which_o thing_n can_v not_o well_o stand_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v not_o be_v incarnate_v for_o then_o there_o shall_v be_v more_o son_n then_o one_o in_o the_o trinity_n namely_o the_o second_o person_n the_o son_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o three_o person_n the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o son_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n it_o may_v be_v object_v to_o the_o contrary_a on_o this_o manner_n the_o whole_a divine_a essence_n be_v incarnate_a every_o person_n in_o trinity_n be_v the_o whole_a divine_a essence_n therefore_o every_o person_n be_v incarnate_a ans._n the_o whole_a godhead_n indeed_o be_v incarnate_a yet_o not_o
in_o the_o eternal_a counsel_n of_o god_n set_v apart_o to_o be_v a_o public_a surety_n or_o pledge_n for_o we_o 7.22_o to_o suffer_v and_o perform_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o in_o our_o person_n shall_v have_v suffer_v and_o perform_v for_o this_o cause_n god_n the_o father_n be_v say_v to_o give_v his_o son_n unto_o we_o and_o the_o son_n again_o to_o give_v his_o life_n for_o his_o friend_n 15.13_o the_o ●econd_a question_n be_v how_o by_o the_o short_a and_o temporary_a death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n any_o man_n can_v possible_o be_v free_v from_o eternal_a death_n and_o damnation_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o for_o the_o least_o sin_n ans._n when_o we_o say_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n suffer_v it_o must_v be_v understand_v with_o distinction_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o godhead_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o assume_v manhood_n yet_o nevertheless_o the_o passion_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o whole_a person_n of_o christ_n god_n and_o man_n and_o from_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o person_n which_o suffer_v arise_v the_o dignity_n &_o excellency_n of_o the_o passion_n whereby_o it_o be_v make_v in_o value_n and_o price_n to_o countervail_v everlasting_a damnation_n for_o when_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n suffer_v the_o curse_n for_o a_o short_a time_n it_o be_v more_o than_o if_o all_o man_n and_o angel_n have_v suffer_v the_o same_o for_o ever_o vii_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o suffering_n of_o martyr_n and_o that_o stand_v in_o two_o thing_n first_o christ_n passion_n be_v a_o curse_a punishment_n the_o suffering_n of_o the_o martyr_n be_v no_o curse_n but_o either_o chastisement_n or_o trial_n second_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n be_v meritorious_a for_o we_o even_o before_o god_n because_o he_o become_v our_o mediator_n and_o surety_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n but_o the_o suffering_n of_o martyr_n be_v not_o of_o value_n to_o merit_v for_o we_o at_o god_n hand_n because_o in_o suffer_v they_o be_v but_o private_a man_n and_o therefore_o they_o nothing_o appertain_v to_o us._n by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o treasury_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o common_a chest_n contain_v the_o overplus_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o saint_n mingle_v with_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n keep_v and_o dispose_v by_o the_o pope_n himself_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o senseless_a dotage_n of_o man_n brain_n and_o whereas_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n do_v merit_v that_o saint_n may_v merit_v both_o for_o themselves_o and_o other_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v the_o son_n of_o god_n become_v jesus_n to_o make_v every_o one_o of_o we_o jesus_n and_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a untruth_n which_o they_o say_v for_o the_o very_a manhood_n of_o christ_n consider_v apart_o from_o the_o godhead_n can_v merit_v proper_o consider_v whatsoever_o it_o be_v have_v or_o do_v it_o be_v have_v and_o do_v the_o same_o whole_o and_o only_o by_o grace_n whereas_o therefore_o christ_n merit_v for_o we_o it_o be_v by_o reason_n he_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n in_o one_o person_n for_o this_o cause_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o one_o mere_a man_n shall_v merit_v for_o another_o the_o use_n of_o the_o passion_n follow_v it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o friar_n and_o jesuit_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o use_v the_o consideration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n gran._n as_o a_o mean_n to_o stir_v up_o compassion_n in_o themselves_o partly_o towards_o christ_n who_o suffer_v grievous_a torment_n and_o partly_o towards_o the_o virgin_n marie_n who_o for_o the_o torment_n of_o her_o dear_a son_n be_v exceed_o trouble_a and_o withal_o to_o kindle_v in_o their_o heart_n a_o indignation_n towards_o the_o jew_n that_o put_v christ_n to_o death_n but_o indeed_o this_o kind_n of_o use_n be_v mere_a humane_a and_o may_v in_o like_a manner_n be_v make_v by_o read_v of_o any_o humane_a history_n but_o the_o proper_a and_o the_o special_a use_n of_o the_o passion_n indeed_o be_v this_o first_o of_o all_o we_o must_v set_v it_o before_o our_o eye_n as_o a_o look_a glass_n in_o which_o we_o may_v clear_o behold_v the_o horriblenesse_n of_o our_o sin_n that_o can_v not_o be_v pardon_v without_o the_o passion_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o unspeakable_a love_n of_o christ_n that_o die_v for_o we_o and_o therefore_o love_v his_o own_o enemy_n more_o than_o his_o own_o self_n and_o last_o our_o endless_a peace_n with_o god_n and_o happiness_n in_o that_o consider_v the_o person_n of_o our_o redeemer_n who_o suffer_v the_o pang_n of_o hell_n we_o may_v after_o a_o sort_n find_v our_o paradise_n even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o hell_n second_o the_o meditation_n of_o christ_n passion_n serve_v as_o a_o most_o worthy_a mean●_n to_o begin_v and_o to_o confirm_v grace_n special_o when_o it_o be_v mingle_v with_o faith_n and_o that_o two_o way_n for_o first_o it_o serve_v to_o breed_v in_o our_o heart_n a_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o our_o sin_n past_a when_o we_o do_v serious_o with_o ourselves_o consider_v that_o our_o own_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o pain_n and_o sorrow_n &_o calamity_n which_o he_o suffer_v in_o life_n and_o death_n 44.29_o when_o any_o man_n have_v sin_v under_o the_o law_n he_o bring_v unto_o the_o temple_n or_o tabernacle_n some_o kind_n of_o beast_n for_o a_o offering_n according_a as_o he_o be_v prescribe_v lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o it_o and_o afterward_o slay_v it_o before_o the_o lord_n now_o by_o the_o ceremony_n of_o lay_v on_o the_o hand_n he_o testify_v that_o he_o for_o his_o part_n have_v deserve_v death_n and_o not_o the_o beast_n and_o that_o it_o be_v slay_v and_o sacrifice_v be_v a_o ●igne_n unto_o he_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n offer_v upon_o the_o cross_n for_o his_o ●innes_n and_o hereby_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o so_o oft_o as_o we_o remember_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n we_o shall_v lay_v our_o hand_n as_o it_o be_v upon_o our_o own_o head_n utter_o accuse_v and_o condemn_v ourselves_o evermore_o keep_v this_o in_o our_o heart_n that_o christ_n suffer_v not_o for_o himself_o but_o for_o our_o offence_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a cause_n of_o all_o his_o woe_n and_o misery_n and_o as_o christ_n passion_n be_v grievous_a and_o bitter_a unto_o he_o so_o shall_v our_o sin_n likewise_o be_v grievous_a and_o bitter_a unto_o we_o let_v we_o always_o remember_v this_o otherwise_o we_o shall_v never_o reap_v any_o sound_a benefit_n by_o the_o passion_n of_o christ._n again_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o notable_a mean_n to_o stir_v up_o in_o our_o heart_n a_o purpose_n and_o a_o care_n to_o reform_v ourselves_o and_o live_v in_o holiness_n and_o newness_n of_o life_n on_o this_o manner_n have_v the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o merciful_o deal_v with_o i_o as_o to_o suffer_v the_o curse_n of_o the_o whole_a law_n for_o my_o manifold_a iniquity_n and_o to_o deliver_v i_o from_o just_a and_o deserve_a damnation_n yea_o no_o doubt_n he_o have_v i_o be_o resolve_v of_o it_o if_o i_o shall_v go_v on_o in_o my_o old_a course_n i_o shall_v be_v the_o most_o ingrateful_a of_o all_o creature_n to_o this_o my_o love_a saviour_n i_o will_v therefore_o by_o his_o grace_n return_n and_o reform_v my_o life_n and_o in_o this_o very_a point_n of_o reformation_n the_o passion_n of_o christ_n be_v set_v before_o we_o as_o a_o most_o lively_a pattern_n and_o example_n to_o follow_v ●_o for_o as_o much_o say_v s._n peter_n as_o christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o we_o in_o the_o flesh_n arm_v your_o s●lues_n likewise_o with_o the_o same_o mind_n which_o be_v that_o he_o which_o have_v suffer_v in_o the_o flesh_n have_v cease_v from_o sin_n where_o he_o teach_v that_o there_o must_v be_v in_o we_o a_o spiritual_a passion_n answerable_a to_o the_o passion_n of_o christ._n for_o as_o his_o enemy_n do_v lade_v he_o with_o misery_n even_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n so_o shall_v we_o lade_v our_o own_o flesh_n that_o be_v the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n with_o all_o such_o mean_n as_o may_v subdue_v and_o weaken_v crucify_v and_o kill_v it_o to_o the_o do_v of_o this_o three_o thing_n especial_o be_v require_v first_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o rebebellious_a nature_n be_v like_o the_o great_a and_o mighty_a goliath_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o we_o receive_v like_o young_a and_o little_a david_n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o desire_v that_o grace_n shall_v prevail_v against_o corruption_n we_o must_v disarm_v the_o strong_a man_n and_o strip_v he_o of_o all_o his_o weapon_n
disciple_n 18.19_o whereas_o notwithstanding_o he_o may_v have_v say_v that_o one_o of_o they_o betray_v he_o another_o deny_v he_o and_o the_o rest_n flee_v away_o whereby_o we_o note_v that_o it_o be_v not_o our_o duty_n at_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o fault_n and_o want_n that_o we_o know_v by_o other_o second_o the_o answer_n which_o he_o make_v be_v only_a concern_v his_o doctrine_n whereby_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n and_o all_o man_n else_o be_v teach_v 3.15_o that_o be_v call_v before_o their_o enemy_n to_o give_v reason_n of_o their_o doctrine_n they_o be_v as_o saint_n peter_n say_v to_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o hope_n that_o be_v in_o they_o and_o further_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v the_o wisdom_n that_o christ_n use_v in_o answer_v for_o he_o say_v nothing_o of_o his_o doctrine_n in_o particular_a but_o say_v ●6_n i_o speak_v open_o to_o the_o world_n i_o ever_o teach_v in_o the_o synagogue_n and_o in_o the_o temple_n whither_o the_o jew_n resort_v in_o secret_a have_v i_o teach_v nothing_o ask_v they_o therefore_o what_o i_o say_v which_o hear_v i_o behold_v they_o can_v tell_v you_o what_o i_o say_v now_o the_o reason_n why_o he_o answer_v thus_o spare_o in_o general_a term_n be_v because_o their_o examination_n serve_v only_o to_o entangle_v he_o and_o out_o of_o his_o word_n to_o gather_v matter_n of_o accusation_n after_o who_o example_n we_o may_v learn_v that_o be_v call_v to_o make_v answer_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n before_o our_o enemy_n we_o be_v to_o do_v it_o so_o as_o thereby_o we_o do_v not_o entangle_v ourselves_o nor_o give_v any_o advantage_n unto_o our_o enemy_n and_o hereof_o we_o have_v a_o notable_a example_n in_o the_o apostle_n paul_n act._n 23._o 6._o again_o in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n answer_n we_o must_v observe_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o place_n where_o christ_n teach_v be_v public_a now_o hence_o it_o may_v be_v demanmand_v whether_o minister_n may_v handle_v the_o word_n of_o god_n private_o or_o no_o ans._n the_o state_n of_o god_n church_n be_v twofold_a peaceable_a or_o troublesome_a in_o the_o time_n of_o peace_n minister_n must_v preach_v the_o word_n public_o but_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n for_o the_o safe●●_n and_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n they_o may_v with_o good_a warrant_n pr●●h_v private_o 1●_n and_o indeed_o at_o such_o time_n the_o assembly_n of_o the_o church_n make_v private_a place_n public_a and_o hence_o we_o learn_v that_o in_o time_n of_o peace_n all_o those_o that_o be_v call_v to_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n must_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a spend_v their_o labour_n public_o so_o as_o they_o may_v do_v most_o good_a second_o whereas_o christ_n say_v he_o preach_v in_o their_o synagogue_n and_o temple_n which_o at_o that_o time_n be_v place_n full_a of_o disorder_n 1●_n in_o so_o much_o as_o he_o call_v the_o temple_n a_o den_n of_o thief_n and_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n have_v corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n 15.3_o transgress_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n in_o their_o own_o tradition_n and_o they_o teach_v justification_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n as_o paul_n say_v ●_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n and_o go_v about_o to_o establish_v their_o own_o righteousness_n which_o be_v by_o work_n and_o not_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n beside_o all_o this_o they_o be_v loose_a and_o wicked_a man_n in_o their_o life_n and_o conversation_n and_o therefore_o christ_n command_v the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v observe_v and_o do_v whatsoever_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n bid_v they_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n ●_o but_o after_o their_o work_n they_o must_v not_o do_v because_o they_o say_v and_o do_v not_o now_o although_o these_o corruption_n and_o deformity_n be_v in_o the_o jewish_a church_n yet_o our_o saviour_n christ_n make_v no_o separation_n from_o it_o but_o come_v and_o preach_v both_o in_o their_o temple_n and_o synagogue_n where_o these_o seducer_n and_o false_a teacher_n be_v and_o hence_o we_o gather_v that_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o those_o man_n in_o our_o church_n which_o separate_v themselves_o from_o all_o assembly_n for_o the_o want_v thereof_o hold_v that_o our_o church_n be_v no_o church_n that_o the_o grace_n which_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n among_o we_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o satanical_a illusion_n that_o our_o sacrament_n be_v no_o sacrament_n i_o say_v this_o their_o practice_n be_v condemn_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n converse_v among_o the_o jew_n for_o if_o christ_n shall_v have_v follow_v their_o opinion_n he_o ought_v to_o have_v flee_v from_o among_o the_o jew_n &_o not_o so_o much_o as_o once_o to_o have_v come_v into_o the_o temple_n or_o teach_v in_o their_o synagogue_n but_o contrariwise_o he_o join_v himself_o with_o they_o and_o therefore_o we_o can_v not_o in_o good_a conscience_n disjoin_v ourselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o second_o thing_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o christ_n answer_n be_v that_o he_o refer_v caiphas_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o his_o hearer_n be_v resolve_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o own_o doctrine_n though_o sundry_a of_o they_o be_v his_o utter_a enemy_n behold_v then_o a_o good_a example_n for_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n to_o follow_v teach_v they_o to_o deliver_v god_n word_n so_o pure_o and_o sincere_o that_o if_o they_o be_v call_v into_o question_n about_o the_o same_o they_o may_v be_v bold_a to_o appeal_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o their_o hearer_n although_o they_o be_v wicked_a man_n now_o after_o this_o answer_n one_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o caiphas_n smite_v christ_n with_o a_o rod_n in_o who_o the_o say_n be_v verify_v ●2_n like_o master_n like_o servant_n that_o be_v if_o the_o master_n be_v wicked_a servant_n common_o will_v be_v wicked_a also_o if_o the_o master_n be_v a_o enemy_n to_o christ_n his_o servant_n will_v be_v christ_n enemy_n also_o and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o there_o be_v so_o many_o lewd_a apprentice_n and_o servant_n because_o there_o be_v so_o many_o lewd_a master_n many_o master_n complain_v of_o servant_n now_o adays_o but_o there_o be_v more_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v complain_v of_o themselves_o for_o usual_o servant_n will_v not_o become_v obedient_a to_o their_o master_n till_o their_o master_n first_o become_v obedient_a unto_o christ_n therefore_o let_v master_n learn_v to_o obey_v god_n and_o then_o their_o servant_n will_v obey_v they_o also_o further_o christ_n be_v smite_v make_v this_o answer_n if_o i_o have_v evil_o speak_v bear_v witness_n of_o the_o evil_a but_o if_o i_o have_v well_o speak_v why_o smite_v thou_o i_o make_o complaint_n of_o a_o injury_n do_v unto_o he_o now_o hereupon_o scoff_v julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la say_v christ_n keep_v not_o his_o own_o law_n but_o go_v against_o his_o own_o precept_n when_o as_o he_o say_v 5.39_o if_o one_o strike_v thou_o on_o the_o one_o cheek_n turn_v to_o he_o the_o other_o also_o but_o we_o must_v know_v that_o in_o these_o word_n christ_n meaning_n be_v that_o a_o man_n must_v rather_o suffer_v a_o double_a wrong_n then_o seek_v a_o private_a revenge_n and_o before_o christ_n speak_v in_o his_o own_o defence_n which_o a_o man_n may_v lawful_o do_v and_o not_o seek_v any_o revenge_n for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o defend_v his_o own_o cause_n and_o another_o to_o seek_v revenge_n now_o follow_v the_o second_o point_n in_o their_o proceed_n which_o be_v the_o produce_v of_o false_a witness_n against_o he_o as_o saint_n matthew_n say_v 26.60_o the_o whole_a counsel_n seek_v false_a witness_n against_o he_o and_o thongh_v many_o come_v yet_o find_v they_o none_o for_o they_o can_v not_o agree_v together_o because_o they_o allege_v false_a thing_n against_o he_o which_o they_o can_v not_o prove_v and_o thus_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n have_v often_o such_o enemy_n as_o make_v no_o bone_n shameful_o to_o avouch_v that_o against_o they_o which_o they_o can_v be_v able_a to_o justify_v g●●●_n the_o ten_o persecution_n which_o be_v in_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n arise_v oftentimes_o of_o shameless_a report_n that_o man_n give_v out_o which_o say_v that_o christian_n live_v of_o man_n flesh_n and_o therefore_o slay_v their_o own_o child_n 2._o that_o they_o live_v on_o raw_a flesh_n 3._o that_o they_o commit_v incest_n one_o with_o another_o in_o their_o assembly_n 4._o that_o they_o worship_v the_o head_n of_o a_o ass_n 5._o that_o they_o worship_v the_o sun_n and_o moon_n 6._o that_o they_o be_v traitor_n and_o seek_v to_o undermine_v the_o roman_a empire_n and_o last_o
of_o a_o little_a worldly_a pelf_n oh_o how_o be_v we_o grieve_v but_o see_v our_o transgression_n be_v the_o weapon_n whereby_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v crucify_v let_v we_o i_o say_v it_o again_o and_o again_o learn_v to_o be_v grieve_v for_o they_o above_o all_o thing_n and_o with_o bleed_v and_o melt_a heart_n bow_v and_o buckle_v under_o they_o as_o under_o the_o cross_n second_o christ_n say_v of_o himself_o ●4_n as_o moses_n lift_v up_o the_o serpent_n in_o the_o wilderness_n so_o must_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v lift_v up_o the_o comparison_n be_v excellent_a and_o worthy_a the_o mark_v in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o arabia_n the_o people_n of_o israel_n rebel_v against_o god_n and_o thereupon_o he_o send_v fiery_a serpent_n among_o they_o which_o sting_v many_o of_o they_o to_o death_n now_o when_o they_o repent_v moses_n be_v command_v to_o make_v a_o brazen_a serpent_n and_o to_o set_v it_o upon_o a_o pole_n that_o as_o many_o as_o be_v sting_v may_v look_v unto_o it_o and_o recover_v and_o if_o they_o can_v but_o cast_v a_o glance_n of_o the_o eye_n on_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n when_o they_o be_v sting_v even_o to_o death_n they_o be_v restore_v to_o health_n and_o life_n now_o every_o man_n that_o live_v be_v in_o the_o same_o case_n with_o the_o israelite_n satan_n have_v sting_v we_o at_o the_o heart_n and_o give_v we_o many_o a_o deadly_a wound_n if_o we_o can_v feel_v it_o and_o christ_n who_o be_v figure_v by_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v likewise_o exalt_v on_o the_o cross_n to_o confer_v righteousness_n and_o life_n eternal_a to_o every_o one_o of_o we_o therefore_o if_o we_o will_v escape_v eternal_a death_n we_o must_v renounce_v ourselves_o and_o lift_v up_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o christ_n crucify_v and_o pray_v for_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o then_o shall_v our_o heart_n and_o conscience_n be_v heal_v of_o the_o wound_n and_o gripe_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o until_o such_o time_n as_o we_o have_v grace_n to_o do_v this_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v cure_v but_o still_o lie_v wound_v with_o the_o sting_n of_o satan_n and_o bleed_v to_o death_n even_o at_o the_o very_a heart_n although_o we_o feel_v no_o pain_n or_o grief_n at_o all_o but_o some_o may_v ask_v how_o any_o man_n can_v see_v he_o crucify_v now_o after_o his_o death_n ans._n wheresoever_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v preach_v there_o christ_n be_v crucify_v as_o paul_n say_v 3.2_o oh_o foolish_a galatian_n who_o have_v bewitch_v you_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o obey_v the_o truth_n to_o who_o before_o jesus_n christ_n be_v describe_v in_o your_o sight_n and_o among_o you_o crucify_v mean_v that_o he_o be_v lively_o preach_v among_o they_o we_o need_v not_o to_o go_v to_o wooden_a cross_n or_o to_o golden_a crucifix_n to_o seek_v for_o he_o but_o where_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v thither_o must_v we_o go_v and_o there_o lift_v up_o our_o eye_n of_o faith_n to_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v reveal_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o word_n rest_v on_o he_o and_o his_o merit_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n and_o with_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n confess_v and_o bewail_v our_o sin_n crave_v at_o his_o hand_n mercy_n and_o pardon_n for_o the_o same_o for_o till_o such_o time_n as_o we_o do_v this_o we_o be_v grievous_o sting_v by_o satan_n and_o be_v every_o moment_n even_o at_o death_n door_n and_o if_o we_o can_v thus_o behold_v christ_n by_o faith_n the_o benefit_n which_o come_v hereby_o shall_v be_v great_a for_o as_o paul_n say_v the_o old_a man_n that_o be_v the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n that_o reign_v in_o we_o shall_v be_v crucify_v with_o he_o for_o when_o christ_n be_v nail_v on_o the_o cross_n all_o our_o sin_n be_v lay_v upon_o he_o therefore_o if_o thou_o do_v unfeigned_o believe_v all_o thy_o sin_n be_v crucify_v with_o he_o and_o the_o corruption_n of_o thy_o nature_n languish_v and_o die_v as_o he_o languish_v and_o die_v upon_o the_o cross_n three_o we_o must_v learn_v to_o imitate_v christ_n as_o he_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v nail_v to_o the_o cross_n for_o our_o sin_n so_o answerable_o must_v every_o one_o of_o we_o learn_v to_o crucify_v our_o flesh_n and_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o the_o wickedness_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n as_o paul_n say_v 3.24_o they_o that_o be_v christ_n have_v crucify_v the_o flesh_n with_o the_o lust_n and_o affection_n thereof_o and_o this_o we_o shall_v do_v if_o for_o our_o sin_n pass_v we_o wail_v and_o mourn_v with_o bitterness_n and_o prevent_v the_o sin_n to_o come_v into_o which_o we_o may_v fall_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n by_o use_v all_o good_a mean_n as_o prayer_n and_o fast_v and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v and_o by_o fly_v all_o occasion_n of_o offence_n we_o be_v not_o to_o destroy_v our_o body_n or_o to_o kill_v ourselves_o but_o to_o kill_v and_o crucify_v sin_n that_o live_v in_o we_o and_o to_o mortify_v the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n that_o rebel_v against_o the_o spirit_n christianity_n stand_v not_o in_o this_o to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o outward_o to_o profess_v the_o same_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n still_o to_o live_v in_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o pamper_v our_o own_o rebellious_a flesh_n but_o it_o teach_v we_o always_o to_o have_v in_o readiness_n some_o spear_n or_o other_o to_o wound_v sin_n and_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o cut_v down_o corruption_n in_o we_o that_o thereby_o we_o may_v show_v ourselves_o to_o be_v lively_a follower_n of_o christ_n indeed_o four_o by_o this_o we_o may_v learn_v that_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o sin_n be_v wonderful_a great_a because_o his_o own_o son_n bear_v our_o person_n and_o be_v in_o our_o place_n be_v not_o only_o crucify_v and_o rack_v most_o cruel_o but_o also_o bare_a the_o whole_a wrath_n of_o god_n in_o his_o soul_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v leave_v off_o to_o make_v so_o little_a account_n of_o sin_n as_o common_o we_o do_v five_o whereas_o the_o person_n crucify_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n it_o show_v that_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o he_o bear_v unto_o we_o in_o our_o redemption_n be_v endless_a like_o a_o sea_n without_o bank_n or_o bottom_n it_o can_v not_o be_v search_v into_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v not_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v so_o our_o condemnation_n will_v be_v the_o great_a six_o in_o this_o that_o christ_n bear_v the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n upon_o the_o cross_n we_o learn_v that_o those_o that_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n when_o they_o suffer_v any_o judgement_n cross_n or_o calamity_n either_o in_o body_n or_o in_o mind_n or_o both_o do_v not_o bear_v they_o as_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n but_o as_o the_o chastisement_n of_o a_o love_a father_n for_o it_o do_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n to_o punish_v one_o fault_n twice_o and_o therefore_o when_o any_o man_n that_o put_v his_o whole_a confidence_n in_o god_n shall_v either_o in_o his_o own_o person_n in_o his_o good_a name_n or_o in_o his_o good_n feel_v the_o heavy_a hand_n of_o god_n god_n do_v not_o as_o a_o judge_n curse_v he_o but_o as_o a_o father_n correct_v he_o here_o then_o be_v condemn_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o hold_v that_o we_o by_o our_o suffering_n do_v in_o some_o part_n satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n but_o this_o can_v not_o stand_v because_o christ_n do_v make_v a_o perfect_a fatisfaction_n to_o the_o justice_n of_o his_o father_n for_o all_o punishment_n and_o therefore_o satisfaction_n to_o god_n make_v by_o man_n for_o temporal_a punishment_n be_v needless_a and_o much_o derogate_v from_o christ_n passion_n in_o the_o crucify_a of_o christ_n two_o thing_n special_o must_v be_v consider_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o do_v of_o it_o and_o his_o continuance_n alive_a upon_o the_o cross_n touch_v the_o manner_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v note_v two_o thing_n the_o first_o that_o christ_n be_v crucify_v between_o two_o thief_n the_o one_o upon_o his_o left_a hand_n the_o other_o upon_o his_o right_n in_o which_o action_n be_v verify_v the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n esai_n 53.6_o he_o be_v number_v among_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o jew_n for_o their_o part_n do_v hereby_o testify_v that_o they_o esteem_v he_o to_o be_v not_o some_o common_a wicked_a man_n but_o even_o the_o captain_n and_o ringleader_n of_o all_o thief_n and_o malefactor_n whatsoever_o now_o whereas_o christ_n stand_v upon_o the_o cross_n in_o our_o room_n and_o stead_n be_v repute_v the_o head_n and_o prince_n of_o all_o sinner_n it_o serve_v to_o teach_v every_o one_o of_o we_o
will_v teach_v you_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n show_v his_o desire_n that_o the_o same_o benefit_n which_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o bestow_v on_o he_o may_v also_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v convey_v to_o other_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o great_a shame_n to_o see_v man_n profess_v religion_n carry_v away_o with_o every_o company_n and_o with_o the_o vanity_n and_o fashion_n of_o the_o world_n whereas_o they_o shall_v rather_o draw_v even_o the_o worst_a man_n that_o be_v to_o the_o fellowship_n of_o those_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o the_o prophet_n jeremie_n 15.19_o must_v be_v apply_v to_o all_o man_n let_v they_o return_v unto_o thou_o but_o return_v not_o thou_o unto_o they_o in_o instrument_n of_o music_n the_o string_n out_o of_o tune_n must_v be_v set_v up_o to_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v in_o tune_n and_o not_o the_o rest_n to_o it_o again_o in_o that_o he_o check_n high_a fellow_n it_o show_v that_o those_o which_o be_v touch_v for_o their_o own_o sin_n be_v also_o grieve_v when_o they_o see_v other_o man_n sin_n and_o offend_v god_n but_o to_o go_v further_o in_o this_o point_n let_v we_o diligent_o and_o careful_o mark_v the_o manner_n of_o his_o reproof_n fear_v thou_o not_o god_n see_v thou_o be_v in_o the_o same_o condemnation_n in_o which_o word_n he_o rip_v up_o his_o lewdness_n even_o to_o the_o quick_a and_o give_v he_o a_o worthy_a item_n tell_v he_o that_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o their_o former_a wickedness_n have_v be_v the_o want_n of_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o this_o point_n must_v every_o one_o of_o we_o mark_v with_o great_a diligence_n for_o if_o we_o enter_v into_o our_o heart_n and_o make_v a_o through_o search_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o this_o be_v the_o root_n and_o fountain_n of_o all_o our_o offence_n we_o miserable_a man_n for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v not_o grace_v to_o consider_v that_o we_o be_v always_o before_o god_n and_o to_o quake_v and_o tremble_v at_o the_o consideration_n of_o his_o presence_n and_o this_o make_v we_o so_o often_o to_o offend_v god_n in_o our_o life_n as_o we_o do_v abraham_n come_v before_o abimelech_n shift_v for_o himself_o say_v that_o sara_n be_v his_o sister_n and_o be_v demand_v why_o he_o do_v so_o answer_v 1●_n because_o he_o think_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o that_o place_n insinuate_v that_o he_o which_o want_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n will_v not_o make_v conscience_n of_o any_o sin_n whatsoever_o will_v we_o then_o even_o from_o the_o bottom_n of_o our_o heart_n turn_v to_o god_n and_o become_v new_a creature_n then_o let_v we_o learn_v to_o fear_n god_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o this_o when_o a_o man_n be_v persuade_v in_o his_o own_o heart_n and_o conscience_n that_o wheresoever_o he_o be_v he_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n and_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o by_o reason_n thereof_o be_v afraid_a to_o sin_n this_o we_o must_v have_v full_o settle_v in_o our_o heart_n if_o we_o desire_v to_o learn_v but_o the_o first_o lesson_n of_o true_a wisdom_n but_o what_o reason_n use_v the_o thief_n to_o draw_v his_o fellow_n to_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n thou_o be_v say_v he_o in_o the_o same_o condemnation_n that_o be_v by_o thy_o sin_n &_o manifold_a transgression_n thou_o have_v deserve_v death_n and_o it_o be_v now_o most_o just_o inflict_v upon_o thou_o will_v thou_o not_o yet_o fear_v god_n where_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o temporal_a punishment_n and_o cross_n aught_o to_o be_v mean_n to_o work_v in_o we_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n for_o that_o be_v one_o end_n why_o they_o be_v send_v of_o god_n 119.71_o it_o be_v good_a for_o i_o say_v david_n that_o i_o have_v be_v chastise_v that_o i_o may_v learn_v thy_o statute_n and_o paul_n say_v 11.32_o when_o we_o be_v chastise_v we_o be_v nurture_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o jew_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o prophet_n micah_n to_o say_v 7.9_o i_o will_v bear_v the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n because_o i_o have_v sin_v against_o he_o the_o second_o fruit_n of_o his_o conversion_n be_v that_o he_o condemn_v himself_o and_o his_o fellow_n for_o their_o sin_n say_v indeed_o we_o be_v righteous_o here_o for_o we_o receive_v thing_n worthy_a for_o that_o we_o have_v do_v that_o be_v we_o have_v wonderful_o sin_v against_o god_n majesty_n and_o against_o our_o brethren_n and_o therefore_o this_o grievous_a punishment_n which_o we_o bear_v be_v most_o just_a and_o due_a unto_o us._n this_o fruit_n of_o repentance_n spring_v and_o grow_v very_o thin_a among_o we_o for_o few_o there_o be_v which_o do_v serious_o condemn_v themselves_o for_o their_o own_o sin_n the_o manner_n of_o man_n be_v to_o condemn_v other_o and_o to_o cry_v out_o that_o the_o world_n be_v never_o so_o bad_a but_o bring_v they_o home_o to_o themselves_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o have_v many_o excuse_n and_o defence_n as_o plaister-worke_n to_o cast_v over_o their_o foul_a and_o filthy_a sin_n and_o if_o they_o be_v urge_v to_o speak_v against_o themselves_o the_o worst_a will_v be_v thus_o god_n help_v we_o we_o be_v all_o sinner_n even_o the_o best_a of_o us._n but_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o he_o which_o be_v thorough_o touch_v in_o conscience_n for_o his_o sin_n both_o can_v and_o will_v speak_v more_o against_o himself_o for_o his_o manifold_a offence_n than_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o thus_o paul_n when_o he_o be_v convert_v 1.15_o call_v himself_o the_o chief_a of_o all_o sinner_n and_o the_o prodigal_a child_n confess_v that_o he_o have_v sin_v against_o heaven_n and_o against_o his_o father_n and_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v call_v his_o child_n the_o three_o fruit_n of_o his_o conversion_n be_v that_o he_o excuse_v our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o give_v testimony_n of_o his_o innocence_n say_v but_o this_o man_n have_v do_v nothing_o amiss_o mark_v here_o pilate_n condemn_v christ_n herod_n mock_v he_o all_o the_o learned_a scribe_n and_o pharisee_n condemn_v he_o and_o the_o people_n cry_v away_o with_o he_o let_v he_o be_v crucify_v and_o among_o his_o own_o disciple_n peter_n deny_v he_o and_o the_o rest_n run_v away_o there_o remain_v only_o this_o poor_a silly_a wretch_n upon_o the_o cross_n to_o give_v testimony_n of_o christ_n innocence_n whereby_o we_o learn_v that_o god_n choose_v the_o simple_a one_o of_o this_o world_n to_o overthrow_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o wise_a and_o therefore_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o be_v not_o offend_v at_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n by_o reason_n that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n simple_a and_o mean_a man_n in_o the_o world_n embrace_v it_o nay_o mark_v further_o this_o one_o thief_n be_v convert_v have_v a_o better_a judgement_n in_o matter_n concern_v god_n kingdom_n than_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o by_o this_o all_o student_n may_v learn_v that_o if_o they_o desire_v to_o have_v in_o themselves_o upright_o judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n first_o of_o all_o they_o must_v become_v repentant_a sinner_n and_o though_o a_o man●have_v never_o so_o much_o learning_n yet_o if_o he_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o his_o own_o blind_a affection_n and_o lust_n they_o will_v corrupt_v and_o darken_v his_o judgement_n man_n which_o work_n in_o mine_n and_o coale-pit_n under_o the_o earth_n be_v trouble_v with_o nothing_o so_o much_o as_o with_o damp_n which_o make_v their_o candle_n burn_v dark_a and_o sometime_o put_v it_o quite_o out_o now_o every_o man_n sin_n be_v the_o damp_n of_o his_o heart_n which_o when_o they_o take_v place_n do_v dim_v the_o light_n of_o his_o judgement_n and_o cast_v a_o mist_n over_o the_o mind_n and_o darken_v the_o understanding_n and_o reason_n and_o therefore_o a_o needful_a thing_n it_o be_v that_o man_n in_o the_o first_o place_n shall_v provide_v for_o their_o own_o conversion_n the_o four_o fruit_n of_o his_o repentance_n be_v that_o he_o pray_v for_o mercy_n at_o christ_n hand_n lord_n say_v he_o remember_v i_o when_o thou_o come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n in_o which_o prayer_n we_o may_v see_v what_o be_v the_o property_n of_o faith_n this_o thief_n at_o this_o instant_n hear_v nothing_o of_o christ_n but_o the_o scorn_n and_o mock_n of_o the_o people_n and_o he_o see_v nothing_o but_o a_o base_a ●state_n full_a of_o ignominy_n and_o shame_n and_o the_o curse_a death_n of_o the_o cross_n yet_o nevertheless_o he_o now_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o therefore_o entreat_v for_o salvation_n at_o his_o hand_n hence_o we_o learn_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o another_o to_o have_v feel_n and_o experience_n and_o that_o even_o then_o when_o we_o have_v no_o sense_n or_o experience_n we_o must_v believe_v
part_n the_o decree_n of_o election_n the_o decree_n of_o reprobation_n or_o no-election_n this_o division_n be_v plain_a by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v out_o of_o the_o 9_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n and_o it_o may_v be_v further_o confirm_v by_o other_o testimony_n of_o some_o it_o be_v say_v 2.19_o that_o the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o and_o of_o some_o other_o christ_n shall_v say_v in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n 13.48_o i_o never_o know_v you_o in_o the_o act_v it_o be_v say_v that_o as_o many_o of_o the_o gentile_n as_o be_v ordain_v to_o life_n everlasting_a believe_v and_o jude_n say_v of_o false_a prophet_n 4._o that_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o condemnation_n in_o handle_v the_o decree_n of_o election_n i_o will_v consider_v three_o thing_n i._n what_o election_n be_v ii_o the_o execution_n thereof_o iii_o the_o knowledge_n of_o particular_a election_n for_o the_o first_o god_n election_n be_v a_o decree_n in_o which_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n he_o have_v certain_o choose_v some_o man_n to_o life_n eternal_a in_o christ_n for_o the_o prai●e_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n this_o be_v the_o same_o which_o paul_n say_v to_o the_o ephesian_n 4.5_o god_n have_v choose_v we_o in_o christ_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n before_o he_o in_o love_n who_o have_v predestine_v we_o to_o be_v adopt_v through_o jesus_n christ_n unto_o himself_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n now_o that_o we_o m●y_v the_o better_o conceive_v this_o doctrine_n let_v we_o come_v to_o a_o consideration_n of_o the_o several_a point_n thereof_o first_o of_o all_o i_o say_v election_n be_v god_n decree_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n that_o come_v to_o pass_v either_o universal_o or_o particular_o without_o the_o eternal_a and_o unchangeable_a decree_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o whereas_o man_n be_v actual_o choose_v &_o bring_v to_o life_n everlasting_a it_o be_v because_o god_n do_v purpose_n with_o himself_o and_o decree_v the_o same_o before_o all_o world_n now_o touch_v the_o decree_n itself_o six_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v the_o first_o what_o be_v the_o motive_n or_o impulsive_a cause_n that_o move_v god_n to_o decree_v the_o salvation_n of_o any_o man_n ans._n the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n for_o paul_n say_v he_o will_v have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o he_o have_v predestine_v we_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n 1.5_o as_o for_o the_o opinion_n of_o they_o that_o say_v that_o foresee_v faith_n and_o good_a work_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o move_v god_n to_o choose_v man_n to_o salvation_n it_o be_v frivolous_a for_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n be_v the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o god_n election_n paul_n say_v he_o have_v choose_v we_o not_o because_o he_o do_v foresee_v that_o we_o will_v become_v holy_a but_o th●t_o we_o may_v be_v holy_a ●●_o and_o he_o have_v predestine_v we_o to_o adoption_n which_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v he_o have_v predestine_v we_o to_o believe_v because_o adoption_n come_v by_o believe_v now_o if_o man_n be_v elect_v that_o they_o may_v believe_v then_o be_v they_o not_o elect_v because_o they_o will_v believe_v for_o it_o can_v not_o be_v that_o one_o thing_n shall_v be_v both_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o another_o the_o second_o point_n be_v that_o god_n election_n be_v unchangeable_a so_o as_o they_o which_o be_v indeed_o choose_v to_o salvation_n can_v not_o perish_v but_o shall_v without_o fail_v attain_v to_o life_n everlasting_a paul_n take_v it_o for_o a_o conclusion●_n that_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n according_a to_o election_n must_v remain_v firm_a and_o sure_a 29._o and_o again_o that_o the_o gift_n and_o call_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n and_o samuel_n say_v the_o strength_n of_o israel_n will_v not_o lie_v or_o repent_v for_o he_o be_v not_o a_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v repent_v ●9_n such_o as_o god_n nature_n be_v such_o be_v his_o will_n and_o counsel_n but_o his_o nature_n be_v unchangeable_a i_o be_o jehovah_n say_v he_o 6._o and_o i_o change_v not_o therefore_o his_o will_n likewife_n and_o his_o counsel_n be_v unchangeable_a and_o therefore_o whensoever_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n shall_v testify_v unto_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v in_o christ_n and_o choose_v to_o salvation_n it_o must_v be_v a_o mean_n to_o comfort_v we_o and_o to_o establish_v our_o heart_n in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n as_o for_o the_o opinion_n of_o they_o that_o say_v the_o elect_a may_v fall_v from_o grace_n and_o be_v damn_v it_o be_v full_a of_o hellish_a discomfort_n and_o no_o doubt_n from_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o reason_n common_o allege_v for_o this_o purpose_n be_v of_o no_o moment_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o scan_n of_o they_o ●_o first_o they_o object_n that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o ephesian_n thessalonian_n and_o the_o disperse_a jew_n be_v all_o call_v elect_a by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o yet_o sundry_a of_o they_o afterward_o fall_v away_o ans._n i._o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v give_v of_o man_n the_o judgement_n of_o certainty_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n by_o the_o first_o indeed_o be_v give_v a_o infallible_a determination_n of_o any_o man_n election_n but_o it_o belong_v unto_o god_n principal_o and_o proper_o and_o to_o man_n but_o in_o part_n namely_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o god_n shall_v reveal_v the_o estate_n of_o one_o man_n unto_o another_o now_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n belong_v unto_o all_o man_n and_o by_o it_o leave_v all_o secret_a judgement_n unto_o god_n we_o be_v charitable_o to_o think_v that_o all_o those_o that_o live_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v member_n of_o christ_n be_v indeed_o elect_v to_o salvation_n till_o god_n make_v manifest_a otherwise_o and_o on_o this_o manner_n and_o not_o otherwise_o do_v the_o apostle_n call_v whole_a church_n elect_v ii_o they_o be_v call_v elect_v of_o the_o principal_a part_n and_o not_o because_o every_o member_n thereof_o be_v indeed_o elect_v as_o it_o be_v call_v a_o heap_n of_o corn_n though_o the_o big_a part_n be_v chaff_n 9●3_n second_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o david_n pray_v that_o his_o enemy_n may_v be_v blot_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n which_o be_v the_o election_n of_o god_n and_o that_o moses_n and_o paul_n do_v the_o like_a against_o themselves_o answer_n david_n enemy_n have_v not_o their_o name_n write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n but_o only_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n thus_o judas_n so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n be_v account_v as_o one_o have_v his_o name_n write_v in_o heaven_n now_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o man_n name_n be_v blot_v out_o of_o god_n book_n when_o it_o be_v make_v clear_a and_o manifest_a unto_o the_o world_n that_o they_o be_v never_o indeed_o write_v there_o and_o where_o moses_n say_v forgive_v they_o this_o sin_n if_o not_o blot_n i_o out_o of_o thy_o bo●ke_n and_o paul_n i_o can_v wish_v to_o be_v accurse_v etc._n etc._n there_o meaning_n be_v not_o to_o signify_v that_o man_n elect_v to_o salvation_n may_v become_v reprobate_n only_o they_o testify_v their_o zealous_a affection_n that_o they_o can_v be_v content_a to_o be_v deprive_v of_o their_o own_o salvation_n rather_o than_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o people_n shall_v perish_v and_o god_n loose_v his_o glory_n as_o for_o that_o which_o christ_n say_v 70._o have_v i_o not_o choose_v you_o twelve_o and_o one_o of_o you_o be_v a_o devil_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o of_o election_n to_o salvation_n but_o of_o election_n to_o office_n of_o a_o apostle_n which_o be_v temporary_a and_o changeable_a the_o three_o point_n be_v that_o there_o be_v a_o actual_a election_n make_v in_o time_n be_v indeed_o a_o fruit_n of_o god_n decree_n and_o answerable_a unto_o it_o and_o therefore_o i_o add_v in_o the_o description_n these_o word_n whereby_o he_o have_v choose_v some_o man_n all_o man_n by_o nature_n be_v sinner_n and_o child_n of_o wrath_n shut_v up_o under_o one_o &_o the_o same_o estate_n of_o condemnation_n and_o actual_a election_n be_v when_o it_o please_v god_n to_o sever_v and_o single_a out_o some_o man_n above_o the_o rest_n out_o of_o this_o wretched_a estate_n of_o the_o wicked_a world_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o own_o son_n thus_o christ_n say_v of_o his_o own_o disciple_n 15.19_o i_o have_v choose_v you_o out_o of_o the_o world_n the_o four_o point_n be_v the_o actual_a or_o real_a foundation_n of_o god_n election_n
all_o be_v grieve_v when_o one_o rejoice_v all_o rejoice_n as_o in_o the_o body_n when_o one_o member_n suffer_v all_o suffer_v the_o second_o branch_n of_o their_o communion_n be_v in_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n spirit_n as_o love_v hope_v fear_v etc._n etc._n and_o this_o be_v show_v when_o one_o man_n do_v employ_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n bestow_v on_o he_o for_o the_o good_a and_o salvation_n of_o another_o as_o a_o candle_n spend_v itself_o to_o give_v light_n to_o other_o so_o must_v god_n people_n spend_v those_o gift_n which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o their_o brethren_n a_o christian_a man_n howesoever_o he_o be_v the_o free_a man_n upon_o earth_n yet_o be_v he_o servant_n to_o all_o man_n 5.13_o especial_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n to_o do_v service_n unto_o the_o member_n of_o it_o by_o love_n for_o the_o good_a of_o all_o and_o this_o good_a be_v procure_v when_o we_o convey_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n bestow_v on_o we_o to_o our_o brethren_n and_o that_o be_v do_v five_o way_n i._o by_o example_n ii_o by_o admonition_n iii_o by_o exhortation_n iv._o by_o consolation_n v._o by_o prayer_n the_o first_o which_o be_v good_a example_n we_o be_v enjoin_v by_o christ_n say_v 5●_n let_v your_o light_n so_o shine_v before_o man_n that_o they_o may_v see_v your_o good_a work_n and_o glorify_v your_o father_n which_o in_o heaven_n and_o that_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v touch_v with_o special_a care_n of_o this_o duty_n the_o lord_n set_v before_o we_o his_o own_o bless_a example_n say_v 11.1_o be_v you_o holy_a as_o i_o be_o holy_a and_o learn_v of_o i_o that_o i_o be_o meek_a and_o low_o and_o paul_n say_v be_v you_o follower_n of_o i_o as_o i_o follow_v christ_n and_o the_o high_a man_n be_v exalt_v the_o more_o careful_a aught_o they_o to_o be_v in_o give_v good_a example_n for_o let_v a_o man_n of_o note_n or_o estimation_n do_v evil_a and_o he_o shall_v present_o have_v many_o follower_n evil_a example_n run_v from_o one_o to_o a_o other_o l●ke_v a_o leprosy_n or_o infection_n &_o this_o christ_n signify_v when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o figtree_n plant_v in_o the_o vineyard_n 13.18_o if_o it_o bear_v no_o fruit_n make_v all_o the_o ground_n barren_a the_o second_o mean_n of_o communication_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n unto_o other_o be_v admonition_n which_o be_v a_o ordinance_n of_o god_n whereby_o christian_n man_n be_v to_o recover_v their_o brethren_n from_o their_o sin_n a_o man_n by_o occasion_n fall_v into_o the_o water_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o his_o life_n &_o the_o reach_a of_o the_o hand_n by_o another_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o save_v he_o now_o every_o man_n when_o he_o sin_v do_v as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v cast_v his_o soul_n into_o the_o very_a pit_n of_o hell_n and_o wholesome_a admonition_n be_v as_o the_o reach_a out_o of_o the_o hand_n to_o recover_v he_o again_o but_o it_o will_v peradventure_o be_v say_v how_o must_v we_o proceed_v in_o admonish_v of_o other_o ans._n we_o be_v to_o observe_v three_o thing_n the_o first_o be_v to_o search_v whether_o we_o that_o be_v to_o reprove_v be_v faulty_a ourselves_o in_o the_o same_o thing_n or_o no._n 7.5_o first_o we_o must_v take_v out_o the_o beam_n that_o be_v in_o our_o own_o eye_n and_o so_o shall_v we_o see_v clear_o to_o pull_v out_o the_o mote_n in_o our_o brother_n eye_n second_o before_o we_o reprove_v we_o must_v be_v sure_a that_o the_o fault_n be_v commit_v we_o must_v not_o go_v upon_o hearsay_a or_o likelihood_n and_o therefore_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v 10.14_o let_v we_o consider_v or_o observe_v one_o another_o to_o provoke_v unto_o love_n or_o good_a work_n three_o before_o we_o reprove_v we_o must_v in_o christian_a wisdom_n make_v choice_n of_o time_n and_o place_n for_o all_o time_n and_o place_n derue_v not_o to_o this_o purpose_n and_o therefore_o solomon_n say_v it_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o a_o man_n to_o pass_v by_o a_o offence_n furthermore_o in_o the_o act_n of_o admonish_v two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v i._n a_o man_n must_v deliver_v the_o word_n of_o his_o admonition_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o he_o can_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o as_o the_o party_n which_o be_v admonish_v may_v in_o the_o person_n of_o man_n see_v god_n himself_o to_o reprove_v he_o ii_o his_o reproof_n must_v be_v make_v with_o as_o much_o compassion_n and_o fellow_n feel_v of_o other_o man_n want_n as_o may_v be_v as_o paul_n say_v 6.1_o if_o any_o man_n be_v fall_v by_o occasion_n into_o any_o fault_n you_o which_o be_v spiritual_a joint_n restore_v such_o a_o one_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n the_o three_o way_n of_o communicate_v good_a thing_n to_o other_o be_v exhortation_n and_o it_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o excite_v and_o stir_v they_o on_o forward_o which_o do_v already_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n therefore_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v exhort_v one_o another_o daily_a lest_o any_o of_o you_o be_v harden_v through_o the_o deceitfulnes_n of_o sin_n but_o alast_n the_o practice_n of_o this_o duty_n as_o also_o of_o the_o former_a be_v hard_o to_o be_v find_v among_o man_n for_o it_o be_v usual_a in_o family_n that_o master_n and_o father_n in_o stead_n of_o admonish_v their_o servant_n and_o child_n teach_v they_o the_o practice_n of_o sin_n in_o swear_v blaspheme_a slander_v etc._n etc._n and_o as_o for_o exhortation_n it_o be_v not_o use_v let_v a_o man_n that_o have_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n offend_v never_o so_o little_a in_o stead_n of_o brotherlie_a exhortation_n he_o shall_v hear_v his_o profession_n cast_v in_o his_o tooth_n and_o his_o hear_n of_o sermon_n this_o practice_n be_v so_o general_a that_o many_o beginning_n new_o to_o tread_v in_o the_o step_n of_o godliness_n be_v hereby_o daunt_v and_o quite_o drive_v back_o the_o four_o way_n be_v consolation_n which_o be_v a_o mean_v appoint_v by_o god_n whereby_o one_o man_n shall_v with_o word_n of_o heavenly_a comfort_n refresh_v the_o soul_n of_o other_o afflict_v with_o sickness_n or_o any_o other_o way_n feel_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n either_o in_o body_n or_o in_o mind_n and_o this_o duty_n be_v as_o little_o regard_v as_o any_o of_o the_o former_a in_o time_n of_o man_n sickness_n neighbour_n come_v in_o but_o what_o say_v they_o i_o be_o sorry_a to_o see_v you_o in_o this_o case_n i_o hope_v to_o see_v you_o well_o again_o i_o will_v be_v sorry_a else_o etc._n etc._n not_o one_o of_o a_o hundred_o can_v speak_v a_o word_n of_o comfort_n to_o the_o weary_a but_o we_o be_v faulty_a herein_o for_o with_o what_o affection_n do_v we_o believe_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n when_o we_o ourselves_o be_v as_o dry_a fountain_n that_o do_v scarce_o convey_v a_o drop_n of_o refresh_v to_o other_o the_o last_o mean_n be_v prayer_n whereby_o god_n church_n procure_v blessing_n for_o the_o several_a member_n thereof_o and_o they_o again_o for_o the_o whole_a and_o herein_o lie_v a_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n which_o minister_v notable_a comfort_n to_o every_o christian_a heart_n for_o hence_o we_o may_v reason_v thus_o i_o be_o indeed_o a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o though_o my_o own_o prayer_n be_v weak_a yet_o my_o comfort_n be_v this_o i_o know_v that_o i_o be_o partaker_n of_o all_o the_o good_a prayer_n of_o all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n disperse_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n my_o f●llowe_a member_n and_o of_o all_o the_o blessing_n which_o god_n bestow_v on_o they_o this_o will_v make_v we_o in_o all_o our_o trouble_n to_o say_v with_o elisha_n 6.16_o fear_v not_o for_o they_o that_o be_v with_o we_o be_v more_o than_o they_o that_o be_v with_o they_o when_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n have_v sin_v in_o worship_v the_o golden_a calf_n the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v kindle_v and_o make_v a_o breach_n into_o they_o as_o canon_n shoot_v against_o a_o wall_n 23_o but_o moses_n the_o servant_n of_o god_n stand_v in_o the_o breach_n before_o the_o lord_n to_o turn_v away_o his_o wrath_n lest_o he_o shall_v destroy_v they_o and_o the_o prayer_n of_o moses_n be_v so_o effectual_a that_o the_o lord_n say_v 32.10_o let_v i_o alone_o as_o though_o moses_n by_o prayer_n have_v hold_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n that_o he_o can_v not_o punish_v the_o people_n and_o some_o think_v that_o steven_n prayer_n for_o his_o enemy_n when_o he_o be_v stone_v be_v a_o mean_n of_o paul_n conversion_n and_o sure_o though_o there_o be_v no_o other_o reason_n yet_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o move_v a_o man_n to_o embrace_v christian_a religion_n consider_v that_o be_v a_o member_n of_o
second_o point_n be_v in_o what_o thing_n this_o communion_n consist_v ans._n saint_n paul_n open_v this_o point_n to_o the_o very_a full_a when_o he_o say_v that_o after_o christ_n have_v subdue_v all_o thing_n unto_o he_o 15.28_o than_o god_n shall_v be_v all_o in_o all_o that_o be_v god_n himself_o immediate_o shall_v be_v all_o good_a thing_n that_o heart_n can_v wish_v to_o all_o the_o elect_a but_o some_o man_n may_v say_v what_o be_v not_o god_n all_o in_o all_o unto_o we_o even_o in_o this_o life_n for_o whatsoever_o good_a thing_n we_o have_v they_o be_v all_o from_o he_o ans._n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o god_n be_v all_o in_o all_o even_o in_o this_o life_n but_o how_o not_o immediate_o but_o by_o outwards_n mean_n and_o that_o also_o in_o small_a measure_n for_o he_o convey_v his_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n unto_o we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v on_o earth_n partly_o by_o his_o creature_n and_o partly_o by_o his_o word_n and_o sacrament_n but_o after_o this_o life_n be_v end_v all_o help_n and_o outward_a mean_n shall_v cease_v christ_n shall_v give_v up_o his_o kingdom_n and_o as_o he_o be_v mediator_n shall_v cease_v to_o put_v in_o execution_n the_o office_n of_o a_o priest_n a_o prophet_n or_o a_o king_n all_o authority_n and_o power_n shall_v be_v abolish_v and_o therefore_o all_o calling_n in_o the_o three_o main_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n the_o commonwealth_n the_o family_n shall_v have_v a_o end_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o magistrate_n and_o subject_n pastor_n and_o people_n master_n and_o servant_n father_n and_o son_n husband_n and_o wife_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o use_n of_o meat_n drink_n clothing_n respiration_n physic_n sleep_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o the_o condition_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v many_o thousand_o fold_n more_o bless_v then_o ever_o it_o be_v for_o the_o godhead_n in_o the_o trinity_n immediate_o without_o all_o mean_n shall_v be_v all_o thing_n to_o all_o the_o choose_a people_n of_o god_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n world_n without_o end_n this_o may_v seem_v strange_a to_o man_n reason_n but_o it_o be_v the_o very_a ●lat_a truth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n s._n john_n in_o the_o description_n of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n say_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o temple_n in_o it_o why_o how_o then_o shall_v god_n be_v worship_v mark_v what_o follow_v 22_o the_o lord_n god_n almighty_a and_o the_o lamb_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o it_o whereby_o be_v signify_v that_o although_o now_o we_o use_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o mean_n of_o our_o fellowship_n with_o god_n yet_o when_o this_o life_n be_v end_v they_o must_v all_o cease_v god_n and_o christ_n be_v in_o stead_n of_o all_o these_o mean_n unto_o us._n and_o he_o add_v further_a the_o city_n have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o sun_n neither_o of_o the_o moon_n to_o shine_v in_o it_o what_o then_o will_v some_o say_v 23._o must_v there_o be_v nothing_o but_o darkness_n not_o so_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n do_v lighten_v it_o and_o the_o lamb_n be_v the_o light_n of_o it_o again_o he_o say_v that_o in_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n ●●_o there_o be_v the_o river_n of_o water_n of_o life_n and_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n bear_v fruit_n every_o month_n and_o that_o be_v christ._n and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o need_n of_o meat_n drink_n apparel_n sleep_n etc._n etc._n but_o christ_n himself_o our_o head_n and_o redeemer_n shall_v be_v in_o stead_n of_o they_o all_o unto_o we_o on_o who_o all_o the_o elect_a shall_v feed_v and_o by_o who_o both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n they_o shall_v be_v preserve_v evermore_o if_o a_o man_n will_v have_v glory_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v his_o glory_n if_o a_o man_n desire_v wealth_n and_o pleasure_n god_n himself_o shall_v be_v wealth_n and_o pleasure_n unto_o he_o and_o whatsoever_o else_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n can_v wish_v hence_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o communion_n be_v most_o admirable_a and_o that_o no_o tongue_n can_v tell_v nor_o heart_n conceive_v the_o least_o part_n of_o it_o the_o three_o point_n be_v touch_v the_o benefit_n or_o prerogative_n that_o proceed_v of_o this_o communion_n and_o they_o be_v in_o number_n six_o the_o first_o be_v a_o absolute_a freedom_n from_o all_o want_n in_o the_o mind_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o ignorance_n no_o unbelief_n no_o distrust_n in_o god_n no_o ambition_n no_o envy_n anger_n nor_o carnal_a lust_n nor_o terror_n in_o conscience_n or_o corrupt_a affection_n in_o the_o body_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o sore_n no_o sickness_n nor_o pain_n 21.4_o for_o god_n shall_v wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n from_o their_o eye_n nay_o they_o all_o defect_n or_o want_n in_o body_n or_o soul_n or_o in_o both_o shall_v be_v supply_v and_o the_o whole_a man_n make_v perfect_a every_o way_n the_o second_o be_v perfect_a knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o this_o life_n the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n know_v he_o but_o in_o part_n moses_n will_v have_v see_v god_n face_n but_o he_o be_v permit_v to_o see_v only_o his_o hinder_a part_n and_o as_o paul_n say_v 12●_n now_o we_o know_v in_o part_n and_o dark_o as_o through_o a_o glass_n in_o this_o life_n we_o can_v no_o otherwise_o discern_v but_o as_o a_o old_a man_n through_o spectacle_n &_o the_o creature_n but_o special_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o spectacle_n of_o our_o mind_n wherein_o we_o behold_v his_o justice_n mercy_n love_n etc._n etc._n and_o without_o they_o we_o can_v discern_v little_a or_o nothing_o yet_o after_o this_o life_n when_o that_o which_o be_v perfect_a be_v come_v and_o that_o which_o be_v imperfect_a be_v abolish_v we_o shall_v see_v god_n as_o he_o be_v to_o be_v see_v not_o as_o through_o a_o glass_n but_o face_n to_o face_n and_o we_o shall_v know_v he_o as_o we_o be_v know_v of_o his_o majesty_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o possible_o a_o creature_n may_v god_n indeed_o be_v infinite_a and_o therefore_o the_o full_a knowledge_n of_o his_o majesty_n can_v no_o more_o be_v comprehend_v by_o the_o understanding_n of_o a_o creature_n which_o be_v finite_a than_o the_o sea_n by_o a_o spoon_n yet_o nevertheless_o god_n shall_v be_v know_v every_o way_n of_o man_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o a_o creature_n may_v know_v the_o creator_n now_o upon_o this_o that_o the_o elect_v have_v such_o fullness_n of_o knowledge_n it_o may_v be_v demand_v whether_o man_n shall_v know_v one_o another_o after_o this_o life_n or_o no._n ans._n this_o question_n be_v often_o move_v by_o such_o as_o be_v ignorant_a then_o by_o they_o that_o have_v knowledge_n and_o oftentimes_o it_o be_v toss_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o they_o that_o have_v little_a religion_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o therefore_o i_o answer_v first_o man_n shall_v rather_o have_v care_n to_o seek_v how_o they_o may_v come_v to_o heaven_n then_o to_o dispute_v what_o they_o shall_v do_v when_o they_o be_v there_o the_o common_a proverb_n be_v true_a it_o be_v not_o good_a count_v of_o chicken_n before_o they_o be_v hatch_v second_o i_o say_v that_o man_n in_o heaven_n shall_v know_v each_o other_o yea_o they_o shall_v know_v they_o which_o be_v never_o know_v or_o see_v of_o they_o before_o in_o this_o life_n which_o may_v be_v gather_v by_o proportion_n out_o of_o god_n word_n adam_n in_o his_o innocence_n know_v eve_n 2.23_o who_o he_o have_v never_o see_v before_o &_o give_v she_o a_o fit_a name_n so_o soon_o as_o she_o be_v create_v and_o when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v transfigure_v in_o the_o mount_n 17.4_o peter_n know_v moses_n and_o elias_n who_o before_o he_o have_v never_o see_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v like_a that_o the_o elect_n shall_v know_v each_o other_o in_o heaven_n where_o their_o knowledge_n and_o their_o whole_a estate_n shall_v be_v full_o perfect_v but_o whether_o they_o shall_v know_v one_o another_o after_o a_o earthly_a manner_n as_o to_o say_v this_o man_n be_v my_o father_n this_o be_v my_o uncle_n this_o my_o teacher_n etc._n etc._n the_o word_n of_o god_n say_v nothing_o and_o therefore_o i_o will_v be_v silent_a and_o we_o must_v be_v content_a a_o while_n to_o be_v ignorant_a in_o this_o point_n the_o three_o prerogative_n of_o everlasting_a blessedness_n be_v that_o the_o elect_n shall_v love_v god_n with_o as_o perfect_a love_n as_o a_o creature_n possible_o can_v the_o manner_n of_o love_a god_n be_v to_o love_v he_o for_o himself_o and_o the_o measure_n be_v to_o love_v he_o without_o measure_n and_o both_o shall_v be_v find_v in_o heaven_n for_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n shall_v have_v a_o actual_a fruition_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o be_v
have_v certain_a assurance_n to_o be_v hear_v for_o he_o that_o pray_v must_v steadfast_o believe_v that_o god_n in_o christ_n will_v grant_v his_o petition_n this_o affiance_n be_v want_v it_o make_v prayer_n to_o be_v no_o prayer_n for_o how_o can_v he_o pray_v for_o any_o thing_n effectual_o who_o doubt_v whether_o he_o shall_v obtain_v it_o or_o no._n wherefore_o it_o be_v a_o especial_a point_n of_o prayer_n to_o be_v persuade_v that_o god_n to_o who_o prayer_n be_v make_v not_o only_o can_v but_o also_o will_v grant_v his_o request_n mar._n 11._o 24._o whatsoever_o you_o desire_v when_o you_o pray_v believe_v that_o you_o shall_v have_v it_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v unto_o you_o here_o we_o see_v two_o thing_n require_v in_o prayer_n the_o first_o a_o desire_n of_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o we_o want_v the_o second_o be_v faith_n whereby_o we_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v grant_v the_o thing_n desire_v the_o ground_n of_o this_o faith_n be_v reconciliation_n with_o god_n and_o the_o assurance_n thereof_o for_o unless_o a_o man_n be_v in_o conscience_n in_o some_o measure_n persuade_v that_o all_o his_o sin_n be_v pardon_v and_o that_o he_o stand_v reconcile_v to_o god_n in_o christ_n he_o can_v believe_v any_o other_o promise_v reveal_v in_o the_o word_n nor_o that_o any_o of_o his_o prayer_n shall_v be_v hear_v thus_o much_o of_o the_o definition_n of_o prayer_n now_o let_v we_o see_v what_o use_n may_v be●_n make_v of_o ●his_n commandment_n pray_v you_o thus_o see_v our_o saviour_n command_v his_o discipless_a and_o so_o even_o we_o also_o to_o pray_v to_o god_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n not_o only_o to_o present_v our_o prayer_n to_o god_n but_o also_o to_o do_v it_o cheerful_o and_o earnest_o rom._n 15._o 30._o also_o brethren_n i_o beseech_v you_o that_o you_o will_v strive_v with_o i_o by_o prayer_n to_o god_n for_o i_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o lord_n do_v oft_o defer_v his_o blessing_n after_o our_o prayer_n no_o cause_n but_o that_o he_o may_v stir_v we_o up_o to_o be_v more_o earnest_a to_o cry_v unto_o the_o lord_n exod._n 32._o 10._o when_o moses_n pray_v to_o god_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o israelite_n the_o lord_n answer_v let_v i_o alone_o as_o though_o his_o prayer_n do_v bind_v the_o lord_n and_o hinder_v he_o from_o execute_v his_o judgement_n wherefore_o this_o be_v good_a advice_n for_o all_o christian_a man_n to_o continue_v and_o to_o be_v zealous_a in_o prayer_n if_o thou_o be_v a_o ignorant_a man_n for_o shame_n learn_v to_o pray_v see_v it_o be_v god_n commandment_n make_v conscience_n of_o it_o we_o see_v that_o there_o be_v no_o man_n unless_o he_o be_v desperate_o wicked_a but_o will_v make_v some_o conscience_n of_o kill_v and_o stealing●_n and_o why_o be_v this_o because_o it_o be_v god_n commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v thou_o shall_v not_o steal_v well_o then_o this_o also_o be_v god_n commandment_n to_o pray_v let_v this_o consideration_n breed_v in_o thou_o a_o conscience_n of_o this_o duty_n and_o although_o thy_o corrupt_a nature_n shall_v draw_v thou_o away_o from_o it_o yet_o strive_v to_o the_o contrary_a and_o know_v it_o certain_o that_o ●he_v breach_n of_o this_o commandment_n make_v thou_o as_o well_o guilty_a of_o damnation_n before_o god_n as_o any_o other_o furthermore_o this_o must_v be_v a_o motive_n to_o prick_v thou_o forward_o to_o this_o duty_n that_o as_o god_n command_v we_o to_o pray_v so_o also_o he_o give_v the_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n whereby_o the_o commandment_n be_v make_v easy_a unto_o us._n if_o the_o lord_n have_v command_v a_o thing_n impossible_a then_o there_o have_v be_v some_o cause_n of_o discouragement_n but_o command_v a_o thing_n through_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n very_o easy_a and_o profitable_a how_o much_o more_o be_v we_o bind_v to_o obedience_n of_o the_o same_o again_o prayer_n be_v the_o key_n whereby_o we_o open_v the_o treasure_n of_o god_n and_o pull_v down_o his_o mercy_n upon_o us._n for_o as_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n serve_v to_o declare_v and_o to_o convey_v unto_o we_o god_n grace_n so_o in_o prayer_n we_o come_v to_o have_v a_o lively_a feel_n of_o the_o same_o in_o our_o heart_n and_o further_o this_o must_v move_v we_o to_o prayer_n see_v in_o that_o we_o have_v familiarity_n with_o god_n majesty_n it_o be_v a_o high_a favour_n for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v familiar_a with_o a_o prince_n how_o much_o more_o than_o to_o be_v familiar_a with_o the_o king_n of_o king_n the_o mighty_a jehova_n this_o than_o can_v be_v no_o burden_n or_o trouble_n unto_o we_o be_v one_o of_o the_o many_o prerogative_n that_o god_n bestow_v on_o his_o church_n for_o in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n it_o please_v god_n to_o talk_v to_o we_o and_o in_o prayer_n god_n do_v vouchsafe_v we_o this_o honour_n to_o speak_v and_o as_o it_o be_v familiar_o to_o talk_v with_o he_o not_o as_o to_o a_o fearful_a judge_n but_o as_o to_o a_o love_a and_o merciful_a god_n consider_v also_o that_o prayer_n be_v a_o worthy_a mean_n of_o defence_n not_o only_o to_o we_o but_o also_o to_o the_o church_n &_o they_o that_o be_v absent_a by_o it_o moses_n stand_v in_o the_o breach_n which_o god_n wrath_n have_v make_v into_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n and_o stay_v the_o same_o psal._n 106._o 23._o by_o this_o christian_a man_n fight_v as_o valiant_a champion_n against_o their_o own_o corruption_n and_o all_o other_o spiritual_a enemy_n eph._n 6._o 18._o infinite_a be_v it_o to_o show_v how_o many_o blessing_n the_o lord_n have_v bestow_v on_o his_o servant_n by_o prayer_n in_o a_o word_n luther_n who_o it_o please_v god_n to_o use_v as_o a_o worthy_a instrument_n for_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o gospel_n testify_v of_o himself_o that_o have_v this_o grace_n give_v he_o to_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o have_v more_o reveal_v unto_o he_o of_o god_n truth_n by_o prayer_n then_o by_o read_v and_o study_n the_o second_o point_n of_o the_o commandment_n be_v to_o pray_v after_o the_o manner_n propound_v in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o the_o lord_n prayer_n be_v a_o direction_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o sampler_n to_o teach_v we_o how_o and_o in_o what_o manner_n we_o ought_v to_o pray_v none_o be_v to_o imagine_v that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o use_v these_o word_n only_o &_o none_o other_o for_o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o bind_v we_o to_o the_o word_n but_o to_o the_o matter_n and_o to_o the_o manner_n and_o to_o the_o like_a affection_n in_o pray_v if_o this_o be_v not_o so_o the_o prayer_n of_o god_n servant_n set_v down_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n shall_v all_o be_v faulty_a because_o they_o be_v not_o set_v down_o in_o the_o very_a same_o word_n with_o the_o lord_n prayer_n nay_o this_o prayer_n be_v not_o set_v down_o in_o the_o same_o word_n altogether_o by_o matthew_n and_o luke_n and_o whereas_o sundry_a man_n in_o our_o church_n hold_v it_o unlawful_a to_o use_v this_o very_a form_n of_o word_n as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n for_o a_o prayer_n they_o be_v far_o deceive_v as_o will_v appear_v by_o their_o reason_n first_o say_v they_o it_o be_v scripture_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v use_v as_o a_o prayer_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o same_o thing_n may_v be_v the_o scripture_n of_o god_n &_o also_o the_o prayer_n of_o man_n else_o the_o prayer_n of_o moses_n david_n and_o paul_n be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n cease_v to_o be_v prayer_n again_o say_v they_o that_o in_o prayer_n we_o be_v to_o express_v our_o want_n in_o particular_a &_o the_o grace_n which_o we_o desire_v now_o in_o these_o word_n all_o thing_n to_o be_v pray_v for_o be_v only_o in_o general_n propound_v i_o answer_v that_o the_o main_a want_n that_o be_v in_o any_o m●n_z and_o the_o principal_a grace_n of_o god_n to_o be_v desire_v be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o petition_n of_o this_o prayer_n in_o particular_a three_o they_o plead_v that_o the_o pattern_n to_o make_v all_o prayer_n by_o shall_v not_o be_v use_v as_o a_o prayer_n i_o answer_v that_o therefore_o the_o rather_o it_o may_v be_v use_v as_o a_o prayer_n and_o sure_o it_o be_v that_o ancient_a and_o worthy_a divine_n have_v reverence_v it_o as_o a_o prayer_n choose_v rather_o to_o use_v these_o word_n than_o any_o other_o as_o cyprianus_n sermone_fw-la de_fw-fr orat_fw-la dominic_n and_o tertullian_n lib._n de_fw-la fuga_fw-la in_o persequntione_fw-la and_o august_n sermone_fw-la 126._o de_fw-la tempore_fw-la wherefore_o the_o opinion_n be_v full_a of_o ignorance_n and_o error_n well_o whereas_o our_o saviour_n first_o give_v a_o
occasion_n 1._o the_o entrance_n to_o our_o calling_n in_o the_o morning_n 2._o the_o receive_n of_o god_n creature_n at_o noontide_n 3._o the_o go_v to_o rest_n at_o night_n again_o beside_o set_v &_o solemn_a prayer_n there_o be_v certain_a kind_n of_o short_a prayer_n which_o the_o father_n call_v eiaculationes_fw-la that_o be_v the_o lifting_n up_o of_o the_o heart_n into_o heaven_n secret_o and_o sudden_o and_o this_o kind_n of_o pray_v may_v be_v use_v as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v every_o hour_n in_o the_o day_n quest._n 5._o whether_o may_v we_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n or_o no_o ans._n we_o may_v and_o we_o may_v not_o we_o may_v if_o all_o man_n or_o mankind_n be_v take_v distributive_o or_o several_o for_o there_o be_v no_o particular_a country_n kingdom_n town_n person_n but_o we_o may_v make_v prayer_n for_o it_o and_o though_o man_n be_v atheist_n infidel_n heretic_n yea_o devil_n incarnate_a yet_o for_o any_o thing_n we_o know_v they_o may_v belong_v to_o the_o election_n of_o god_n except_o they_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o sin_n be_v very_o seldom_o &_o hardly_o discern_v of_o man_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n must_v the_o commandment_n of_o paul_n be_v understand_v i_o exhort_v therefore_o that_o first_o of_o all_o supplication_n prayer_n etc._n etc._n be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n 1._o tim._n 2.1_o we_o may_v not_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n if_o all_o man_n or_o mankind_n be_v take_v collective_o that_o be_v if_o all_o man_n be_v consider_v whole_o together_o as_o they_o make_v one_o body_n or_o company_n and_o be_v take_v as_o we_o say_v in_o gross_a for_o in_o this_o body_n or_o mass_n of_o mankind_n there_o be_v some_o though_o they_o be_v unknown_a to_o we_o yet_o i_o say_v there_o be_v some_o who_o god_n in_o his_o just_a judgement_n have_v refuse_v who_o salvation_n by_o prayer_n shall_v never_o be_v obtain_v quest._n 6._o whether_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o pray_v in_o read_v of_o a_o prayer_n answer_n it_o please_v some_o to_o move_v this_o question_n but_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n of_o it_o for_o prayer_n be_v a_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n and_o therefore_o a_o spiritual_a action_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n stand_v special_o in_o a_o desire_n of_o that_o which_o we_o want_v and_o faith_n whereby_o we_o believe_v that_o our_o desire_n shall_v be_v grant_v now_o the_o voice_n or_o utterance_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o read_v or_o otherwise_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o prayer_n but_o a_o outward_a mean_n whereby_o prayer_n be_v utter_v and_o express_v therefore_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n be_v read_v shall_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o prayer_n because_o it_o be_v read_v so_o be_v it_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o prayer_n be_v not_o want_v in_o the_o party_n read_v and_o the_o hearer_n object_n to_o read_v a_o sermon_n be_v not_o to_o preach_v and_o therefore_o to_o read_v a_o prayer_n be_v not_o to_o pray_v ans._n the_o reason_n be_v not_o like_a in_o both_o for_o the_o gift_n of_o preach_v or_o prophecy_n can_v not_o be_v show_v or_o practise_v in_o the_o read_n of_o a_o sermon_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o read_n of_o a_o sermon_n be_v not_o preach_v or_o pprophecy_n but_o the_o grace_n and_o gift_n of_o prayer_n may_v be_v show_v in_o read_v of_o a_o prayer_n otherwise_o it_o will_v go_v very_o hard_o with_o they_o that_o want_v convenient_a utterance_n by_o reason_n of_o some_o defect_n in_o the_o tongue_n or_o by_o reason_n of_o bashfulness_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o other_o of_o god_n hear_v our_o prayer_n hitherto_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o make_n of_o prayer_n to_o god_n a_o word_n or_o twain_o of_o god_n hear_v our_o prayer_n quest._n how_o many_o way_n do_v god_n hear_v man_n prayer_n ans._n two_o way_n the_o first_o in_o his_o mercy_n when_o he_o grant_n the_o request_n of_o such_o as_o call_v upon_o he_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o his_o name_n second_o he_o hear_v man_n prayer_n in_o his_o wrath_n thus_o he_o give_v the_o israelite_n quail_n according_a to_o their_o desire_n psal._n 78.29.30.31_o thus_o often_o man_n curse_v themselves_o and_o wish_v that_o they_o be_v hang_v or_o dead_a and_o according_o they_o have_v their_o wish_n quest._n 2._o why_o do_v god_n defer_v to_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o his_o servant_n ans._n first_o to_o prove_v they_o by_o delay_n second_o to_o exercise_v their_o faith_n three_o to_o make_v they_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o receive_v be_v god_n gift_n &_o not_o from_o themselves_o four_o that_o grace_n quick_o give_v may_v not_o be_v light_o esteem_v five_o that_o a_o hunger_a after_o grace_n may_v be_v sharpen_v &_o increase_v question_n 3._o after_o what_o manner_n do_v god_n hear_v his_o servant_n prayer_n answer_n two_o way_n first_o by_o grant_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v ask_v according_a to_o his_o will_n second_o by_o deny_v the_o thing_n desire_v and_o by_o give_v something_o proportional_a to_o it_o thus_o god_n deny_v temporary_a blessing_n and_o in_o the_o room_n thereof_o give_v eternal_a in_o heaven_n thus_o he_o refuse_v to_o remove_v the_o cross_n from_o his_o servant_n and_o give_v in_o stead_n thereof_o strength_n and_o patience_n christ_n pray_v that_o the_o cup_n may_v be_v remove_v it_o be_v not_o remove_v yet_o he_o in_o his_o manhood_n be_v enable_v to_o bear_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n when_o paul_n pray_v three_o time_n that_o the_o prick_n in_o the_o flesh_n may_v be_v remove_v it_o be_v answer_v my_o strength_n be_v sufficient_a for_o thou_o quest._n 4._o why_o do_v not_o god_n always_o hear_v man_n prayer_n ans._n there_o be_v many_o cause_n of_o this_o the_o first_o because_o oftentimes_o we_o know_v not_o to_o ask_v as_o we_o ought_v math._n 20.22_o the_o second_o because_o we_o ask_v amiss_o jam._n 4.3_o the_o three_o because_o otherwhiles_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o ask_v though_o they_o be_v good_a in_o themselves_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o good_a unto_o we_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n be_v withhold_v 2._o cor._n 12.7_o the_o last_o because_o god_n will_v for_o some_o long_a time_n defer_v the_o grant_n of_o that_o which_o we_o ask_v that_o he_o may_v stir_v up_o our_o faith_n and_o hope_n and_o our_o diligence_n in_o prayer_n and_o that_o we_o may_v the_o better_a esteem_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n when_o we_o have_v they_o and_o show_v ourselves_o more_o thankful_a to_o the_o reader_n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n have_v set_v down_o the_o sum_n of_o many_o of_o his_o prayer_n they_o be_v very_o gracious_a and_o heavenly_a and_o i_o have_v here_o set_v they_o down_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v they_o and_o in_o thy_o prayer_n follow_v they_o 16._o i_o cease_v not_o to_o give_v thanks_o for_o you_o make_v mention_n of_o you_o in_o my_o prayer_n 17._o that_o the_o god_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o father_n of_o glory_n may_v give_v unto_o you_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o of_o revelation_n in_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o he_o 18._o the_o eye_n of_o your_o mind_n be_v enlighten_v that_o you_o may_v know_v what_o the_o hope_n be_v of_o his_o call_n and_o what_o the_o riches_n be_v of_o his_o glorious_a inheritance_n in_o the_o saint_n 19_o and_o what_o be_v the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o his_o power_n in_o we_o that_o believe_v according_a to_o the_o work_n of_o his_o mighty_a power_n 20._o which_o he_o wrought_v in_o christ_n when_o he_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o set_v he_o at_o his_o right_a hand_n in_o heavenly_a place_n the_o exposition_n in_o this_o excellent_a prayer_n we_o be_v to_o mark_v two_o thing_n the_o first_o to_o who_o it_o be_v make_v the_o second_o be_v the_o matter_n for_o the_o first_o it_o be_v make_v to_o god_n the_o father_n who_o be_v describe_v by_o two_o title_n the_o first_o the_o god_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n namely_o as_o christ_n be_v man_n for_o as_o christ_n be_v god_n he_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o father_n the_o second_o the_o father_n of_o glory_n that_o be_v a_o glorious_a father_n and_o he_o be_v so_o call_v to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o earthly_a father_n the_o matter_n of_o the_o prayer_n stand_v on_o two_o principal_a point_n first_o he_o ask_v of_o god_n the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n whereby_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v enable_v to_o discern_v out_o of_o the_o word_n in_o every_o business_n which_o they_o take_v in_o hand_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o word_n or_o deed_n what_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v and_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v leave_v undo_v as_o also_o the_o circumstance_n the_o time_n place_n manner_n of_o do_v any_o thing_n second_o he_o pray_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n whereby_o
he_o be_v never_o save_v according_a to_o that_o of_o saint_n james_n ●3_n sin_n be_v perfect_v bring_v forth_o death_n the_o five_o reason_n eternal_a life_n be_v a_o thing_n desire_v of_o all_o man_n yet_o none_o shall_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o it_o but_o the_o true_a christian_n and_o the_o glorious_a estate_n of_o this_o life_n will_v move_v any_o man_n to_o be_v a_o christian_n first_o of_o all_o they_o which_o have_v eternal_a life_n be_v free_v from_o all_o pain_n sickness_n infirmity_n hunger_n thirst_n cold_a weariness_n from_o all_o sin_n as_o anger_n forgetfulness_n ignorance_n from_o hell_n death_n damnation_n satan_n and_o from_o every_o thing_n that_o cause_v misery_n according_a to_o that_o of_o saint_n john_n and_o 21.4_o god_n will_v wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n from_o their_o eye_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o death_n neither_o sorrow_n neither_o cry_v neither_o shall_v there_o be_v any_o more_o pain_n for_o the_o first_o thing_n be_v pass_v second_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n majesty_n in_o heaven_n there_o to_o behold_v his_o face_n that_o be_v his_o glory_n as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v father_n 17.24_o i_o will_v that_o they_o which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o be_v with_o i_o even_o where_o i_o be_o that_o they_o may_v behold_v my_o glory_n which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o and_o david_n say_v in_o 22.4_o thy_o presence_n be_v fullness_n of_o joy_n and_o at_o thy_o right_a hand_n there_o be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o three_o they_o 28._o shall_v have_v such_o a_o excellent_a communion_n with_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v unto_o they_o all_o in_o all_o for_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n when_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o the_o elect_a be_v accomplish_v christ_n shall_v present_v they_o to_o his_o father_n and_o as_o he_o be_v mediator_n he_o shall_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o king_n a_o priest_n a_o prophet_n for_o though_o the_o efficacy_n of_o his_o office_n be_v everlasting_a yet_o the_o execution_n of_o they_o shall_v cease_v as_o paul_n say_v 24._o then_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n when_o he_o have_v deliver_v up_o the_o kingdom_n to_o god_n even_o the_o father_n when_o he_o have_v put_v down_o all_o rule_n all_o authority_n and_o power_n again_o among_o the_o elect_a there_o shall_v not_o be_v king_n &_o subject_n father_n mother_n child_n master_n seruamt_v noble_a ignoble_a rich_a poor_a live_a dead_a some_o will_v say_v what_o then_o shall_v be_v i_o answer_v one_o glorious_a and_o everlasting_a god_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v in_o all_o the_o elect_a all_o that_o heart_n can_v wish_v and_o desire_v man_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o darkness_n neither_o shall_v they_o need_v the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n moon_n or_o star_n god_n himself_o immediate_o shall_v be_v their_o light_n 21.23_o as_o john_n say_v and_o the_o city_n have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o sun_n neither_o of_o the_o moon_n to_o shine_v in_o it_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n do_v light_v it_o and_o the_o lamb_n be_v the_o light_n of_o it_o man_n shall_v not_o then_o need_v meat_n drink_n clothing_n sleep_n recreation_n fire_n shade_n respiration_n or_o any_o other_o such_o like_a but_o god_n himself_o immediate_o shall_v be_v their_o life_n and_o all_o thing_n concern_v life_n by_o christ._n which_o john_n signify_v when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o 2._o see_v a_o pure_a river_n of_o water_n of_o life_n clear_a as_o crystal_n proceed_v out_o of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o lamb_n there_o be_v by_o either_o side_n of_o it_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n which_o bear_v two_o manner_n of_o fruit_n and_o give_v fruit_n every_o month_n and_o whereas_o god_n be_v continual_o to_o be_v worship_v in_o heaven_n they_o need_v no_o other_o tabernacle_n or_o temple_n thereunto_o but_o god_n himself_o shall_v be_v their_o temple_n as_o john_n say_v 21.22_o i_o see_v no_o temple_n therein_o for_o the_o lord_n god_n almighty_a and_o the_o lamb_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o it_o four_o from_o this_o glorious_a communion_n which_o be_v between_o god_n and_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n which_o be_v his_o member_n there_o arise_v a_o unspeakable_a joy_n and_o gladness_n wherewith_o they_o be_v fill_v david_n say_v 36._o that_o god_n child_n shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o fatness_n of_o his_o house_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v give_v they_o drink_v out_o of_o the_o river_n of_o his_o pleasure_n this_o joy_n undoubted_o be_v infinite_a and_o the_o saint_n be_v not_o only_o replenish_v with_o it_o but_o they_o be_v also_o swallow_v up_o of_o it_o as_o with_o a_o huge_a and_o infinite_a sea_n of_o water_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o peter_n who_o at_o the_o transfiguration_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o ravish_v out_o of_o measure_n with_o joy_n at_o the_o sight_n of_o it_o that_o he_o quite_o forget_v himself_o say_v 17.4_o to_o christ_n master_n it_o be_v good_a be_v here_o let_v we_o make_v three_o tabernacle_n one_o for_o thou_o one_o for_o moses_n and_o another_o for_o elias_n last_o out_o of_o this_o communion_n arise_v a_o perfect_a love_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o saint_n love_v god_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n with_o all_o their_o soul_n and_o strength_n and_o this_o love_n show_v itself_o in_o that_o they_o be_v eternal_o occupy_v in_o 12._o worship_v god_n by_o sing_v of_o song_n of_o praise_n &_o thanksgiving_n unto_o he_o now_o then_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v so_o glorious_a and_o none_o can_v have_v it_o but_o the_o true_a christian_a let_v all_o man_n account_v the_o best_a thing_n in_o this_o world_n 3.8_o as_o dross_n and_o dung_n so_o that_o they_o may_v obtain_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n the_o last_o reason_n be_v the_o endless_a love_n of_o jesus_n christ_n show_v in_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n thou_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n and_o vengeance_n satan_n have_v wound_v thou_o with_o many_o a_o deadly_a wound_n of_o sin_n thou_o lie_v bleed_v at_o the_o heart_n and_o art_n like_o to_o die_v eternal_o thou_o be_v in_o this_o estate_n there_o be_v no_o man_n on_o earth_n no_o saint_n in_o heaven_n no_o angel_n no_o creature_n at_o all_o be_v able_a to_o help_v thou_o christ_n only_o be_v able_a he_o therefore_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o become_v man_n for_o this_o cause_n to_o work_v thy_o deliverance_n furthermore_o in_o the_o cure_n of_o the_o wound_n of_o sin_n no_o herb_n no_o water_n no_o plaster_n no_o physic_n can_v do_v thou_o any_o good_a only_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v sovereign_a for_o this_o matter_n be_v stiep_v in_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n he_o therefore_o subject_v himself_o to_o the_o death_n even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n upon_o which_o he_o suffer_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n due_a to_o the_o sin_n of_o mankind_n &_o of_o his_o own_o heart_n blood_n he_o temper_v for_o they_o a_o sovereign_a medicine_n to_o heal_v all_o thy_o wound_n and_o sore_n now_o therefore_o despise_v not_o this_o mercy_n seek_v unto_o christ_n lay_v open_a all_o thy_o sore_n pray_v he_o that_o he_o will_v vouchsafe_v thou_o if_o it_o be_v but_o one_o drop_n of_o his_o blood_n they_o he_o will_v come_v unto_o thou_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n he_o will_v wash_v and_o supple_a thy_o wound_n in_o his_o blood_n and_o bind_v they_o up_o he_o be_v the_o 21.23_o tree_n of_o life_n the_o leaf_n whereof_o heal_v the_o nation_n if_o thou_o get_v but_o one_o leaf_n of_o he_o thou_o be_v well_o it_o will_v heal_v thou_o and_o restore_v thy_o dead_a soul_n that_o thou_o may_v live_v eternal_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n if_o this_o reason_n will_v not_o move_v thou_o to_o be_v a_o christian_n thy_o case_n be_v desperate_a it_o be_v the_o best_a reason_n that_o peter_n can_v use_v to_o this_o purpose_n as_o obedient_a child_n say_v he_o fashion_n not_o yourselves_o unto_o the_o former_a lust_n of_o your_o ignorance_n 14,15_o but_o as_o he_o which_o have_v call_v you_o be_v holy_a so_o be_v you_o holy_a in_o all_o manner_n of_o conversation_n his_o reason_n follow_v 18.19_o know_v that_o you_o be_v not_o redeem_v with_o corruptible_a thing_n as_o silver_n and_o gold_n from_o your_o vain_a conversation_n receive_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o father_n but_o with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o lamb_n undefiled_a and_o without_o spot_n thus_o much_o have_v i_o speak_v to_o the_o worldling_n who_o in_o his_o heart_n make_v no_o more_o account_n of_o christ_n then_o of_o his_o old_a shoe_n and_o who_o have_v rather_o be_v without_o christ_n then_o be_v without_o his_o pig_n with_o the_o gaderens_n 2._o now_o for_o the_o true_a christian_n i_o have_v
be_v wont_n for_o a_o little_a season_n in_o thy_o anger_n to_o hide_v thy_o face_n from_o they_o who_o thou_o love_v but_o sure_o o_o redeemer_n in_o eternal_a mercy_n thou_o will_v show_v thy_o compassion_n for_o when_o thou_o leave_v we_o o_o lord_n thou_o do_v not_o leave_v we_o very_o long_o neither_o do_v thou_o leave_v we_o to_o our_o loss_n but_o to_o our_o lucre_n and_o advantage_n even_o that_o thy_o holy_a spirit_n with_o big_a portion_n of_o thy_o power_n and_o virtue_n may_v lighten_v and_o cheer_v we_o that_o the_o want_n of_o feel_v of_o our_o sorrow_n may_v be_v recompense_v plentiful_o with_o the_o lively_a send_v of_o have_v thou_o to_o our_o eternal_a joy_n and_o therefore_o thou_o swear_v that_o in_o thy_o everlasting_a mercy_n thou_o will_v have_v compassion_n on_o us._n of_o which_o thing_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v be_v most_o assure_v thy_o oath_n be_v to_o be_v mark_v for_o thou_o say_v as_o i_o have_v swear_v that_o i_o will_v never_o bring_v any_o more_o the_o water_n to_o drown_v the_o world_n so_o have_v i_o swear_v that_o i_o will_v never_o more_o be_v angry_a with_o thou_o nor_o reprove_v thou_o the_o mountain_n shall_v remove_v and_o the_o hill_n shall_v fall_v down_o but_o thy_o love_a kindness_n shall_v not_o move_v and_o the_o bond_n of_o thy_o peace_n shall_v not_o fail_v thou_o thus_o say_v thou_o the_o lord_n our_o merciful_a redeemer_n dear_a father_n therefore_o i_o pray_v thou_o remember_v even_o for_o thy_o own_o truth_n &_o mercy_n sake_n the_o promise_n &_o everlasting_a covenant_n which_o in_o thy_o good_a time_n i_o pray_v thou_o to_o write_v in_o my_o heart_n that_o i_o may_v know_v thou_o to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v that_o i_o may_v love_v thou_o with_o all_o my_o heart_n for_o ever_o that_o i_o may_v love_v thy_o people_n for_o thy_o sake_n that_o i_o may_v be_v holy_a in_o thy_o sight_n through_o christ_n that_o i_o may_v always_o not_o only_o strive_v against_o sin_n but_o also_o overcome_v the_o same_o daily_o more_o and_o more_o as_o thy_o child_n do_v above_o all_o thing_n desire_v the_o sanctification_n of_o thy_o name_n the_o come_n of_o thy_o kingdom_n the_o do_v of_o thy_o will_n on_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o redeemer_n mediator_n and_o advocate_n amen_n a_o declaration_n of_o certain_a spiritual_a desertion_n serve_v to_o terrify_v all_o drowsy_a protestant_n and_o to_o comfort_v they_o which_o mourn_v for_o their_o sin_n among_o all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n eternal_a counsel_n there_o be_v none_o more_o wonderful_a than_o be_v desertion_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o action_n of_o god_n forsake_v his_o creature_n furthermore_o god_n forsake_v his_o creature_n not_o by_o withdraw_v his_o essence_n or_o be_v from_o it_o for_o that_o can_v be_v consider_v god_n be_v infinite_a and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o at_o all_o time_n be_v every_o where_o but_o by_o take_v away_o the_o grace_n and_o operation_n of_o his_o spirit_n from_o his_o creature_n neither_o must_v any_o think_v it_o to_o be_v cruelty_n in_o god_n to_o forsake_v his_o creature_n which_o he_o have_v make_v for_o he_o be_v sovereign_a lord_n over_o all_o his_o work_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o any_o and_o he_o may_v do_v with_o his_o own_o whatsoever_o he_o will_n and_o this_o his_o will_n be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o man_n be_v not_o to_o imagine_v that_o a_o thing_n must_v first_o be_v just_a and_o then_o afterward_o that_o god_n do_v will_v it_o but_o contrariwise_o first_o god_n will_v a_o thing_n and_o thereupon_o it_o become_v just_a again_o sin_n be_v so_o wretched_a a_o thing_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n that_o he_o utter_o forsake_v his_o creature_n for_o a_o punishment_n thereof_o now_o every_o thing_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v a_o chastisement_n or_o punishment_n be_v good_a consider_v that_o the_o inflict_v thereof_o be_v the_o execution_n of_o justice_n and_o god_n never_o forsake_v the_o creature_n against_o the_o will_n thereof_o but_o in_o the_o very_a time_n of_o desertion_n it_o voluntary_o forsake_v and_o refuse_v grace_n and_o choose_v to_o be_v forsake_v wherefore_o if_o any_o hurt_n or_o misery_n ensue_v thereof_o let_v the_o creature_n blame_v itself_o and_o praise_v the_o lord_n desertion_n thus_o describe_v be_v of_o two_o sort_n eternal_a and_o temporary_a eternal_a desertion_n be_v those_o whereby_o god_n upon_o just_a cause_n know_v to_o himself_o forsake_v his_o creature_n whole_o and_o for_o ever_o thus_o the_o devil_n with_o his_o angel_n and_o that_o part_n of_o mankind_n which_o be_v prepare_v to_o destruction_n be_v forsake_v for_o first_o god_n before_o all_o world_n do_v decree_n according_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o his_o own_o will_n to_o refuse_v they_o without_o the_o grant_n of_o any_o mercy_n second_o after_o they_o be_v create_v and_o live_v in_o the_o world_n he_o give_v they_o no_o saviour_n for_o christ_n be_v only_o the_o redeemer_n of_o the_o elect_n and_o of_o no_o more_o which_o may_v thus_o appear_v for_o who_o christ_n make_v no_o intercession_n for_o they_o he_o have_v wrought_v no_o redemption_n but_o for_o they_o only_o which_o be_v elect_v &_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o he_o make_v intercession_n i_o pray_v say_v he_o not_o for_o the_o world_n but_o for_o they_o which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o and_o again_o 9,20●_n i_o pray_v not_o for_o these_o alone_a but_o for_o they_o also_o which_o shall_v believe_v in_o i_o through_o their_o word_n wherefore_o christ_n be_v a_o redeemer_n to_o none_o but_o to_o the_o elect._n three_o he_o reserve_v they_o to_o eternal_a damnation_n for_o their_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o total_a separation_n from_o god_n and_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o all_o other_o dese●tions_n for_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o god_n exercise_v wicked_a man_n and_o reprobate_n in_o this_o life_n with_o diverse_a particular_a desertion_n and_o that_o after_o this_o manner_n he_o bestow_v all_o sort_n of_o benefit_n on_o they_o as_o on_o his_o own_o servant_n but_o yet_o so_o as_o that_o he_o withdraw_v that_o part_n of_o his_o benefit_n which_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o life_n eternal_a annex_v to_o it_o in_o the_o word_n and_o in_o this_o matter_n he_o deal_v as_o a_o man_n that_o set_v many_o tree_n in_o his_o orchard_n but_o so_o as_o he_o take_v away_o the_o heart_n or_o the_o pith_n thereof_o and_o this_o the_o lord_n do_v either_o in_o temporal_a or_o spiritual_a benefit_n i._o for_o temporal_a benefit_n as_o wealth_n honour_n liberty_n outward_a peace_n the_o lord_n deal_v very_o bountiful_o with_o they_o 5.45_o he_o make_v his_o sun_n to_o shine_v upon_o the_o just_a and_o unjust_a he_o fill_v their_o belly_n with_o his_o hide_a treasure_n and_o as_o david_n say_v i_o fret_v at_o the_o foolish_a when_o i_o see_v the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o wicked_a for_o there_o be_v no_o bond_n in_o their_o death_n but_o they_o be_v lusty_a and_o strong_a they_o be_v not_o in_o trouble_n as_o other_o man_n neither_o be_v they_o plague_v as_o other_o man_n 73.4,5_o but_o yet_o he_o hold_v back_o that_o which_o be_v the_o principal_a thing_n and_o the_o very_a glory_n of_o these_o benefit_n that_o be_v 15._o the_o right_a use_n of_o they_o for_o that_o a_o man_n may_v pure_o use_v god_n creature_n two_o thing_n be_v require_v first_o his_o person_n must_v stand_v just_a and_o sanctifiee_v before_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ._n for_o until_o a_o man_n person_n please_v god_n his_o work_n shall_v never_o please_v he_o second_o he_o must_v use_v the_o same_o creature_n pure_o which_o be_v do_v partly_o by_o invocation_n of_o god_n name_n and_o partly_o by_o refer_v they_o to_o their_o set_n and_o appoint_a ende●_n which_o be_v god_n glory_n a_o man_n own_a and_o his_o neighbour_n good_a but_o all_o this_o be_v flat_a contrary_n in_o the_o ungodly_a man_n for_o first_o he_o be_v forth_o of_o christ_n so_o that_o his_o person_n stand_v unjust_a before_o god_n and_o therefore_o all_o his_o action_n even_o those_o which_o otherwise_o be_v lawful_a and_o good_a in_o he_o be_v mere_a sin_n second_o he_o use_v god_n gift_n and_o blessing_n with_o a_o evil_a conscience_n for_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o want_n of_o grace_n to_o believe_v he_o can_v resolve_v himself_o that_o god_n as_o his_o father_n do_v bestow_v his_o blessing_n on_o he_o as_o his_o belove_a child_n in_o christ_n yet_o as_o a_o thief_n and_o a_o usurper_n against_o his_o conscience_n he_o use_v they_o add_v further_o the_o creature_n be_v use_v of_o he_o without_o invocation_n for_o such_o a_o one_o can_v not_o pray_v and_o therefore_o he_o do_v but_o as_o the_o swine_n
exhort_v he_o constant_o to_o stick_v to_o the_o same_o &_o to_o play_v the_o man_n nothing_o doubt_v but_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o good_a time_n will_v visit_v he_o &_o satisfy_v his_o desire_n with_o plenty_n of_o consolation_n etc._n etc._n the_o next_o day_n when_o the_o time_n come_v of_o the_o martyrdom_n as_o he_o be_v go_v to_o the_o place_n and_o be_v now_o come_v to_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o stake_n although_o all_o the_o night_n before_o pray_v for_o strength_n and_o courage_n he_o can_v feel_v none_o sudden_o he_o be_v so_o replenish_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o cry_v out_o clap_v with_o his_o hand_n to_o austin_n &_o say_v with_o these_o word_n austin_n he_o be_v come_v he_o be_v come_v etc._n etc._n and_o that_o with_o such_o joy_n and_o alacrity_n as_o one_o seem_v rather_o to_o be_v rise_v from_o some_o deadly_a danger_n to_o liberty_n of_o life_n then_o as_o one_o pass_v out_o of_o the_o world_n by_o any_o pain_n of_o death_n desertion_n in_o sin_n be_v when_o god_n withdraw_v the_o assistance_n of_o his_o spirit_n a_o man_n be_v leave_v to_o fall_v into_o some_o actual_a and_o grievous_a sin_n and_o for_o all_o this_o no_o man_n be_v to_o think_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n but_o only_a man_n that_o fall_v &_o satan_n a_o resemblance_n of_o this_o truth_n we_o may_v see_v in_o a_o staff_n which_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v take_v &_o set_v upright_o upon_o the_o ground_n so_o long_o as_o he_o hold_v it_o with_o his_o hand_n it_o stand_v upright_o but_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o withdraw_v his_o hand_n though_o he_o never_o push_v it_o down_o it_o fall_v of_o itself_o in_o this_o desertion_n be_v the_o good_a king_n hezechiah_n of_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v thus_o 31.32_o hezechiah_n prosper_v in_o all_o his_o way_n therefore_o deal_v with_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o babel_n which_o set_v to_o he_o to_o inquire_v of_o the_o wonder_n which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o land_n god_n leave_v he_o namely_o to_o the_o pride_n of_o his_o heart_n to_o exalt_v himself_o in_o tempt_v he_o that_o he_o may_v try_v out_o all_o that_o be_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o this_o place_n appertain_v noes_n drunkenness_n david_n adultery_n peter_n denial_n of_o christ._n the_o reason_n of_o such_o desertion_n may_v be_v this_o if_o a_o patient_a shall_v be_v grievous_o sick_a the_o physician_n will_v use_v all_o manner_n of_o mean_n that_o can_v be_v devise_v to_o reco●er_v he_o &_o if_o he_o once_o come_v to_o a_o desperate_a case_n the_o physician_n rather_o than_o he_o will_v not_o restore_v he_o will_v employ_v all_o his_o skill_n he_o will_v take_v poison_n and_o so_o temper_v it_o and_o against_o the_o nature_n thereof_o he_o will_v make_v a_o sovereign_a remedy_n to_o recover_v health_n the_o elect_a child_n of_o god_n be_v disease_v with_o a_o inward_a hide_a and_o spiritual_a pride_n whereby_o they_o affect_v themselves_o and_o desire_v to_o be_v something_o in_o themselves_o forth_o of_o christ_n and_o this_o sin_n be_v very_o dangerous_a first●_o because_o when_o other_o sin_n die_v in_o a_o man_n this_o secret_a pride_n get_v strength_n for_o god_n grace_n be_v the_o matter_n of_o pride_n in_o such_o wise_a that_o a_o man_n will_v be_v proud_a because_o he_o be_v not_o proud_a for_o example_n if_o any_o shall_v be_v tempt_v of_o the_o devil_n to_o some_o proud_a behaviour_n and_o by_o god_n grace_n get_v the_o victory_n then_o the_o heart_n thus_o think_v oh_o thou_o have_v do_v well_o thou_o have_v foil_v the_o enemy_n neither_o pride_n nor_o any_o other_o sin_n can_v prevail_v against_o thou_o such_o and_o such_o can_v never_o have_v do_v so_o and_o a_o very_a good_a man_n shall_v hardly_o be_v free_a from_o such_o kind_n of_o motion_n in_o this_o life_n second_o there_o be_v no_o great_a enemy_n to_o faith_n then_o pride_n be_v for_o it_o poison_v the_o heart_n and_o make_v it_o uncapable_a of_o that_o grace_n so_o long_o as_o it_o ber_v any_o sway_n for_o he_o that_o will_v believe_v in_o christ_n must_v be_v annihilate_v that_o be_v he_o must_v be_v bruise_v and_o batter_v to_o a_o flat_a nothing_o in_o regard_n of_o any_o like_n or_o affection_n to_o himself_o that_o he_o may_v in_o spirit_n mount_v up_o to_o heaven_n where_o christ_n sit_v as_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n &_o as_o it_o be_v with_o both_o the_o hand_n of_o faith_n grasp_v he_o with_o all_o his_o bless_a merit_n that_o he_o may_v be_v wisdom_n righteousness_n sanctification_n redemption_n life_n good_a work_n 2.20_o &_o whatsoever_o good_a thing_n he_o be_v neither_o in_o nor_o by_o nor_o for_o himself_o but_o every_o way_n forth_o of_o himself_o in_o christ._n now_o this_o bless_a condition_n of_o a_o believe_a heart_n by_o natural_a self-love_n and_o selfliking_a be_v great_o hinder_v god_n therefore_o in_o great_a mercy_n to_o remedy_v this_o dangerous_a corruption_n let_v his_o elect_a servant_n fall_v into_o trouble_n of_o mind_n and_o conscience_n &_o if_o they_o happy_o be_v of_o great_a hardness_n of_o heart_n into_o some_o actual_a sin_n and_o so_o declare_v his_o wonderful_a mercy_n in_o save_v they_o he_o be_v fain_o against_o his_o mercy_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o his_o mercy_n &_o by_o sin_n to_o save_v they_o from_o sin_n by_o this_o mean_v the_o lord_n who_o can_v bring_v light_a out_o of_o darkness_n make_v a_o remedy_n of_o sin_n to_o slay_v pride_n that_o invincible_a monster_n of_o many_o head_n which_o will_v slay_v the_o soul_n though_o this_o be_v so_o yet_o none_o must_v hereupon_o venture_v to_o commit_v any_o sin_n against_o god_n commandment_n lest_o in_o so_o do_v they_o cast_v away_o their_o soul_n for_o the_o godly_a man_n though_o he_o fall_v into_o sin_n yet_o it_o be_v against_o his_o purpose_n and_o it_o make_v his_o heart_n to_o bleed_v and_o the_o course_n of_o his_o life_n shall_v be_v always_o upright_o and_o please_a unto_o god_n because_o he_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o end_n for_o which_o god_n use_v desertion_n be_v three_o the_o first_o be_v the_o chastisement_n of_o sin_n pass_v in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o man_n life_n that_o he_o may_v search_v they_o out_o consider_v they_o &_o be_v hearty_o sorrowful_a for_o they_o for_o this_o end_n be_v job_n trial_n 13.26_o trou_fw-fr write_v say_v he_o bitter_a thing_n against_o i_o &_o make_v i_o to_o possess_v the_o sin_n of_o my_o youth_n the_o second_o end_n be_v that_o god_n may_v make_v trial_n of_o the_o present_a estate_n of_o his_o servant_n not_o that_o he_o be_v ignorant_a what_o be_v in_o man_n but_o because_o he_o will_v have_v all_o man_n know_v themselves_o to_o this_o effect_n say_v moses_n 13.3_o and_o thou_o shall_v remember_v all_o the_o way_n which_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n lead_v thou_o in_o the_o wilderness_n for_o to_o humble_v thou_o and_o to_o prove_v thou_o to_o know_v what_o be_v in_o thy_o heart_n whether_o thou_o will_v keep_v his_o commandment_n or_o no._n this_o also_o be_v the_o end_n why_o the_o lord_n leave_v ezechias_n to_o prove_v and_o try_v what_o be_v in_o his_o heart_n this_o trial_n by_o desertion_n serve_v for_o two_o purpose_n for_o otherwhiles_o the_o lord_n use_v it_o for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o some_o hide_a sin_n that_o the_o godly_a may_v be_v deeply_o humble_v and_o crave_v more_o earnest_o pardon_v of_o that_o and_o other_o sin_n for_o as_o the_o beggar_n be_v always_o mend_v and_o piece_v his_o garment_n where_o he_o find_v a_o breach_n so_o the_o penitent_a and_o believe_a heart_n must_v always_o be_v exercise_v in_o repair_v itself_o where_o it_o find_v a_o want_n again_o ofttimes_o this_o trial_n serve_v to_o quicken_v and_o revive_v the_o hide_a grace_n of_o the_o heart_n that_o man_n may_v be_v thankful_a for_o they_o and_o feel_v a_o increase_n of_o they_o in_o the_o heart_n the_o good_a husbandman_n cut_v the_o branch_n of_o the_o vine_n not_o that_o he_o have_v a_o purpose_n to_o destroy_v they_o 15.2_o but_o to_o make_v they_o bear_v more_o fruit_n in_o the_o canticle_n when_o christ_n leave_v his_o spouse_n than_o she_o rise_v out_o of_o her_o bed_n she_o open_v the_o door_n 5._o her_o hand_n drop_v myrrh_n on_o the_o bar_n of_o the_o door_n then_o further_o she_o seek_v &_o call_v for_o he_o and_o praise_v he_o more_o than_o ever_o before_o david_n testify_v the_o like_a of_o himself_o 30.6_o in_o my_o prosperity_n i_o say_v i_o shall_v never_o be_v move_v etc._n etc._n but_o thou_o do_v hide_v thy_o fa●e_n and_o i_o be_v trouble_v then_o cry_v i_o to_o thou_o o_o lord_n &_o pray_v to_o my_o lord_n last_o man_n that_o live_v in_o the_o church_n be_v for_o a_o time_n leave_v of_o god_n
in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n that_o thou_o be_v elect_v to_o life_n everlasting_a will_v not_o thou_o say_v that_o thou_o can_v not_o then_o doubt_v any_o long_o of_o thy_o election_n but_o so_o much_o the_o more_o certain_a be_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o bear_v record_n to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o how_o much_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v more_o know_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n than_o any_o angel_n and_o can_v less_o deceive_v then_o a_o angel_n and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o sure_a be_v this_o testimony_n consider_v it_o be_v not_o keep_v in_o the_o bodily_a ear_n where_o it_o may_v soon_o vanish_v away_o but_o in_o our_o mind_n and_o spirit_n because_o the_o spirit_n bear_v record_n to_o our_o spirit_n and_o further_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n never_o depart_v from_o our_o spirit_n but_o dwell_v in_o we_o abide_v in_o we_o speak_v in_o we_o 4.6_o show_v forth_o his_o power_n in_o we_o pray_v in_o us._n therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n by_o which_o we_o cry_v abba_n father_n as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v this_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v altogether_o so_o sure_o by_o which_o he_o bear_v we_o record_v that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o present_o without_o doubt_v we_o can_v call_v upon_o god_n and_o cry_v abba_n father_n and_o all_o the_o elect_v have_v this_o testimony_n be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n and_o be_v renew_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 8.9_o and_o ingraff_v into_o christ._n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n speak_v if_o any_o man_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v not_o he_o therefore_o whosoever_o be_v christ_n and_o be_v ingraff_v into_o christ_n it_o be_v necessary_a he_o shall_v have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o whosoever_o have_v receive_v and_o do_v enjoy_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n to_o their_o mind_n the_o same_o spirit_n bear_v record_n that_o they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o make_v they_o to_o cry_v abba_n father_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o no_o man_n be_v renew_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v not_o persuade_v that_o god_n be_v his_o most_o merciful_a and_o most_o love_a father_n and_o therefore_o can_v call_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o father_n therefore_o although_o all_o man_n in_o that_o they_o be_v assure_v by_o the_o certainty_n of_o f●ith_n that_o god_n be_v their_o father_n and_o they_o be_v his_o son_n do_v not_o thereby_o argue_v and_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n yet_o all_o man_n indeed_o have_v thereby_o a_o sure_a testimony_n of_o their_o election_n to_o glory_n because_o if_o they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n they_o be_v also_o heir_n of_o eternal_a life_n this_o testimony_n i_o will_v brief_o comprise_v within_o this_o demonstration_n whosoever_o call_v upon_o god_n and_o in_o their_o heart_n cry_v abba_n father_n they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o thus_o cry_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o they_o which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v also_o heir_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o they_o have_v be_v predestinate_a to_o adoption_n therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o all_o they_o which_o be_v persuade_v that_o they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v predestinate_a to_o eternal_a life_n and_o must_v be_v persuade_v of_o it_o this_o be_v the_o first_o testimony_n and_o the_o first_o way_n by_o which_o god_n reveal_v to_o every_o elect_a man_n his_o predestination_n namely_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n within_o our_o heart_n bear_v record_n unto_o we_o that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o by_o christ._n and_o let_v this_o be_v the_o first_o argument_n also_o serve_v to_o confirm_v our_o assertion_n the_o second_o way_n predestination_n by_o which_o god_n reveal_v to_o every_o man_n his_o predestination_n be_v by_o his_o word_n i_o mean_v not_o any_o particular_a word_n by_o which_o he_o do_v declare_v to_o any_o outward_o in_o private_a and_o special_a manner_n and_o that_o in_o express_a word_n his_o election_n but_o the_o general_a word_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o which_o christ_n call_v all_o they_o which_o believe_v in_o he_o elect_v both_o by_o himself_o and_o by_o his_o apostle_n as_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n every_o where_o be_v most_o manifest_a for_o although_o in_o particular_a proposition_n he_o say_v not_o to_o thou_o or_o to_o he_o particular_o thou_o be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n yet_o by_o mean_n of_o general_a proposition_n he_o do_v as_o well_o conclude_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v elect_v as_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o conclude_v unto_o particular_a man_n that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v a_o live_a creature_n endue_v with_o reason_n by_o this_o general_a proposition_n every_o man_n be_v a_o reasonable_a creature_n endue_v with_o reason_n the_o assumption_n be_v suppress_v therefore_o after_o this_o manner_n deal_v god_n he_o have_v choose_v all_o and_o every_o several_a man_n who_o he_o be_v to_o endue_v with_o faith_n to_o have_v the_o everlasting_a inheritance_n furthermore_o he_o publish_v it_o to_o all_o the_o elect_a by_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o general_a proposition_n that_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n him●elfe_n the_o assumption_n be_v conceal_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o when_o he_o give_v we_o faith_n he_o make_v every_o one_o of_o we_o to_o make_v a_o assumption_n by_o himself_o in_o his_o mind_n but_o i_o be_o of_o the_o faithful_a for_o i_o find_v in_o myself_o that_o i_o true_o believe_v in_o christ._n therefore_o who_o be_v it_o that_o make_v this_o conclusion_n for_o thou_o that_o thou_o be_v predestinate_a to_o everlasting_a life_n even_o god_n himself_o the_o proposition_n be_v take_v forth_o of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o assumption_n proceed_v of_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o indeed_o by_o which_o we_o proper_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o matter_n contain_v in_o the_o conclusion_n be_v the_o middle_a term_n as_o they_o call_v it_o wherefore_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o god_n by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o gospel_n where_o he_o say_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v elect_v do_v reveal_v to_o every_o faithful_a man_n his_o own_o predestination_n only_o this_o one_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v require_v that_o the_o faithful_a man_n hear_v the_o universal_a propoposition_n in_o his_o mind_n shall_v make_v a_o assumption_n but_o i_o be_o faithful_a by_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o be_v not_o god_n say_v to_o have_v reveal_v to_o every_o man_n his_o special_a malediction_n in_o this_o general_a proposition_n curs●●is_n every_o one_o that_o do_v not_o continue_v in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n 27.26_o although_o he_o say_v to_o no_o man_n special_o thou_o be_v accurse_v for_o every_o one_o do_v make_v this_o assumption_n that_o he_o be_v accurse_v because_o he_o know_v most_o certain_o that_o he_o do_v not_o continue_v in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n therefore_o the_o schoolman_n be_v deceive_v when_o they_o say_v it_o may_v be_v that_o every_o man_n may_v be_v sure_a of_o his_o election_n namely_o if_o god_n which_o be_v able_a will_v reveal_v it_o to_o he_o yet_o that_o he_o do_v only_o reveal_v it_o to_o a_o very_a few_o as_o the_o apostle_n for_o god_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v and_o declare_v even_o by_o his_o word_n in_o general_a proposition_n do_v reveal_v to_o every_o man_n his_o predestination_n for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o certain_a than_o this_o demonstration_n whosoever_o do_v true_o believe_v in_o christ_n they_o be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n in_o christ_n but_o i_o true_o believe_v in_o christ_n therefore_o i_o be_o elect_v but_o some_o make_v a_o exception_n and_o say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o demonstration_n and_o that_o most_o certain_a and_o evident_a if_o a_o man_n may_v be_v able_a to_o know_v that_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n but_o here_o lie_v all_o the_o difficulty_n for_o many_o think_v that_o they_o true_o believe_v in_o christ_n whereas_o nevertheless_o their_o faith_n be_v hypocritical_a and_o temporary_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o evangelist_n believe_v answer_n we_o grant_v that_o they_o which_o believe_v by_o such_o a_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o hypocrisy_n &_o only_o last_v for_o a_o time_n that_o they_o be_v deceive_v whilst_o they_o think_v that_o they_o do_v true_o believe_v and_o yet_o do_v not_o indeed_o for_o they_o be_v like_o they_o which_o dream_n that_o they_o be_v king_n when_o as_o they_o very_a
slender_a and_o great_o languish_v yet_o assure_v thyself_o thou_o be_v endue_v with_o true_a faith_n although_o it_o be_v weak_a and_o therefore_o thou_o be_v in_o christ_n yea_o and_o in_o christ_n elect_v too_o wherefore_o thou_o must_v not_o doubt_v of_o thy_o salvation_n and_o election_n by_o reason_n of_o thy_o daily_a slip_n proceed_v from_o thy_o weakness_n of_o faith_n no_o not_o for_o heinous_a crime_n like_v as_o neither_o david_n for_o his_o adultery_n and_o murder_n not_o peter_n for_o his_o threefold_a denial_n do_v despair_n of_o their_o election_n which_o appear_v in_o that_o be_v plunge_v in_o the_o very_a gulf_n of_o their_o temptation_n they_o hold_v fast_o their_o faith_n as_o a_o anchor_n and_o call_v upon_o god_n this_o be_v the_o second_o prop._n last_o in_o no_o wise_a we_o must_v forget_v namely_o that_o our_o election_n be_v certain_a and_o immutable_a and_o therefore_o as_o it_o be_v do_v without_o respect_n of_o any_o work_n of_o we_o so_o in_o like_a sort_n it_o can_v never_o be_v change_v by_o any_o of_o our_o evil_a desert_n for_o as_o it_o first_o proceed_v from_o the_o only_a free_a purpose_n of_o god_n so_o it_o be_v ground_v thereon_o true_a it_o be_v we_o provoke_v god_n wrath_n against_o we_o by_o our_o sin_n and_o neither_o will_n god_n let_v they_o escape_v unpunished_a but_o he_o chastise_v we_o by_o diverse_a both_o inward_a and_o outward_a scourge_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o david_n above_o all_o other_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o it_o be_v his_o good_a pleasure_n that_o for_o his_o goodness_n sake_n &_o truth_n for_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n that_o his_o purpose_n shall_v remain_v sure_a and_o our_o election_n so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o give_v we_o repentance_n anew_o to_o raise_v we_o up_o and_o to_o receive_v we_o to_o favour_n therefore_o although_o for_o the_o present_a thou_o feel_v thyself_o to_o be_v of_o weak_a faith_n and_o to_o have_v fall_v to_o diverse_a sin_n yet_o whereas_o heretofore_o thou_o have_v have_v many_o &_o evident_a testimony_n of_o thy_o election_n as_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o the_o testimony_n take_v from_o faith_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o faith_n at_o this_o present_a assure_o thou_o can_v not_o doubt_v of_o thy_o election_n for_o thy_o sin_n commit_v but_o thou_o shall_v much_o derogate_v from_o this_o free_a election_n &_o also_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o thy_o election_n heretofore_o enjoy_v yea_o &_o those_o which_o yet_o thou_o enjoy_v for_o if_o thy_o sin_n displease_v thou_o and_o thou_o desire_v to_o live_v without_o blame_n only_o for_o that_o thy_o sin_n displease_v thou_o why_o now_o thou_o have_v a_o new_a testimony_n of_o thy_o election_n for_o such_o repentance_n as_o this_o be_v be_v only_o proper_a unto_o the_o elect_a therefore_o by_o these_o three_o prop_n we_o must_v uphold_v our_o faith_n as_o touch_v every_o one_o particular_a election_n and_o thus_o much_o as_o concern_v the_o certainty_n with_o the_o which_o every_o man_n must_v be_v persuade_v that_o he_o be_v elect_v in_o christ_n to_o eternal_a life_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n assertion_n ii_o whosoever_o be_v predestinate_v to_o the_o end_n they_o be_v also_o predestinate_a to_o the_o mean_n without_o which_o they_o can_v attain_v to_o the_o end_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o elect_n necessary_o at_o length_n do_v come_v unto_o the_o end_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o certainty_n of_o their_o election_n so_o also_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o same_o certainty_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v trace_v through_o those_o mean_n which_o tend_v to_o the_o same_o end_n we_o must_v mark_v the_o end_n to_o which_o we_o be_v predestinate_a predestination_n and_o to_o which_o we_o say_v that_o one_o day_n we_o shall_v be_v bring_v for_o there_o be_v a_o double_a end_n of_o our_o election_n the_o one_o concern_v the_o elect_a themselves_o namely_o their_o glorification_n or_o their_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n in_o heaven_n of_o which_o be_v speak_v rom._n 8._o the_o other_o concern_v god_n himself_o which_o choose_v namely_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o be_v that_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n may_v be_v know_v and_o eternal_o make_v manifest_a of_o which_o be_v mention_v make_v eph._n 1._o both_o of_o they_o be_v so_o couple_v together_o that_o whosoever_o be_v praeelect_v to_o the_o first_o be_v also_o predestinate_a to_o the_o latter_a and_o the_o latter_a follow_v of_o the_o former_a for_o the_o more_o we_o shall_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o heavenly_a glory_n so_o much_o also_o more_o and_o more_o shall_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v make_v manifest_a in_o us._n but_o because_o the_o end_n which_o concern_v god_n be_v almost_o all_o one_o in_o the_o reprobation_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o in_o the_o predestination_n of_o the_o saint_n namely_o that_o by_o the_o salvation_n of_o these_o which_o proceed_v of_o his_o mere_a goodness_n the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n be_v make_v manifest_a so_o also_o by_o the_o just_a damnation_n of_o the_o other_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o divine_a justice_n may_v be_v make_v know_v to_o all_o nevertheless_o consider_v that_o the_o end_n to_o which_o the_o elect_a shall_v attain_v be_v far_o diverse_a from_o that_o for_o it_o be_v eternal_a life_n unto_o which_o the_o reprobate_n be_v appoint_v for_o that_o be_v eternal_a death_n therefore_o the_o end_n of_o which_o we_o treat_v in_o this_o assertion_n be_v our_o eternal_a glorification_n and_o everlasting_a life_n in_o heaven_n let_v we_o now_o see_v in_o the_o second_o place_n what_o be_v those_o mean_n by_o which_o the_o elect_a be_v bring_v unto_o this_o end_n and_o therefore_o to_o which_o mean_v we_o hold_v that_o all_o be_v predestinate_a whosoever_o be_v predestinate_a to_o the_o end_n which_o and_o they_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n some_o of_o they_o be_v so_o necessary_a unto_o all_o that_o without_o they_o no_o man_n simple_o can_v attain_v unto_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n and_o they_o be_v christ_n as_o he_o be_v mediator_n and_o high_a priest_n and_o his_o obedience_n and_o justice_n for_o without_o christ_n no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v also_o our_o effectual_a call_n to_o christ_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o which_o follow_v this_o be_v our_o justification_n yea_o and_o our_o regeneration_n too_o for_o these_o four_o predestination_n vocation_n justification_n and_o glorification_n be_v so_o link_v together_o that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o sever_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o and_o therefore_o no_o man_n can_v be_v glorify_v which_o be_v not_o justify_v and_o no_o man_n can_v be_v justify_v which_o be_v not_o effectual_o call_v as_o also_o no_o man_n can_v be_v effectual_o call_v which_o be_v not_o predestinate_a therefore_o without_o these_o not_o so_o much_o as_o child_n and_o infant_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o this_o end_n of_o eternal_a glory_n and_o therefore_o even_o all_o the_o elect_a infant_n be_v inward_o in_o a_o certain_a peculiar_a manner_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n called_z and_o justify_v and_o glorify_v now_o there_o be_v some_o certain_a mean_n annex_v unto_o these_o which_o albeit_o they_o have_v no_o place_n in_o infant_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o age_n yet_o they_o belong_v to_o all_o other_o elect_v howsoever_o they_o be_v find_v in_o some_o more_o plenteous_a &_o lively_a and_o in_o other_o some_o more_o slender_a &_o weak_a as_o namely_o a_o lively_a faith_n the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n a_o detestation_n of_o sin_n the_o love_n of_o righteousness_n patience_n in_o adversity_n a_o care_n to_o do_v good_a work_n and_o such_o like_a all_o which_o the_o apostle_n comprehend_v under_o the_o name_n of_o good_a work_n when_o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v create_v that_o be_v bear_v a_o new_a in_o christ_n 2.20_o unto_o good_a work_n which_o god_n have_v prepare_v that_o we_o may_v walk_v in_o they_o that_o be_v that_o we_o may_v lead_v our_o life_n in_o they_o and_o so_o walk_v at_o length_n may_v come_v to_o eternal_a life_n for_o without_o they_o we_o can_v come_v to_o eternal_a glory_n but_o by_o they_o god_n trayl_v we_o thither_o therefore_o we_o say_v that_o all_o which_o be_v elect_v to_o that_o end_n be_v also_o predestinate_a to_o the_o same_o mean_n for_o predestination_n be_v not_o only_o of_o the_o end_n but_o also_o of_o the_o mean_n which_o concern_v the_o end_n and_o all_o as_o well_o the_o end_n as_o the_o mean_n be_v the_o effect_n of_o predestination_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v very_o true_a which_o augustine_n say_v predestination_n say_v he_o be_v a_o preparation_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o which_o they_o indeed_o be_v free_v whosoever_o be_v free_v christ._n therefore_o the_o first_o gift_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v
the_o end_n in_o faith_n and_o a_o true_a confession_n of_o christ_n join_v with_o a_o manifest_a care_n to_o live_v a_o godly_a life_n and_o a_o desire_n to_o glorify_v he_o for_o this_o gift_n be_v bestow_v upon_o all_o the_o elect_a as_o the_o lord_n promise_v by_o jeremie_n 23.40_o i_o will_v put_v my_o fear_n into_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o may_v not_o depart_v from_o i_o and_o when_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o their_o life_n they_o shall_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o heavenly_a glory_n until_o such_o time_n as_o their_o body_n also_o be_v raise_v up_o they_o may_v take_v full_a possession_n of_o eternal_a life_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o it_o be_v very_o certain_a that_o those_o which_o be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n be_v also_o predestinate_a to_o use_v those_o mean_n by_o which_o as_o by_o certain_a step_n and_o stair_n they_o climb_v into_o that_o heavenly_a dwell_a place_n and_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v predestinate_a to_o these_o mean_n namely_o faith_n justification_n and_o good_a work_n because_o we_o be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n according_a to_o the_o purpose_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n wherefore_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o doctrine_n also_o of_o the_o pelagian_n be_v confute_v as_o touch_v predestination_n to_o life_n doctrine_n by_o our_o faith_n and_o work_v which_o god_n foresee_v we_o shall_v do_v whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a therefore_o god_n do_v predestine_v we_o to_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n because_o he_o do_v choose_v we_o to_o eternal_a life_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v not_o i_o obtain_v mercy_n because_o i_o be_v faithful_a or_o because_o i_o shall_v be_v faithful_a 2._o but_o that_o i_o may_v be_v faithful_a neither_o say_v he_o that_o we_o be_v elect_v in_o christ_n because_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n but_o that_o we_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n neither_o do_v he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v create_v in_o christ_n because_o we_o do_v or_o shall_v do_v good_a work_n but_o we_o be_v create_v to_o good_a work_n 11_o which_o god_n prepare_v that_o we_o may_v walk_v in_o they_o last_o he_o say_v not_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n appear_v because_o we_o be_v to_o live_v sober_o just_o and_o godly_a but_o that_o it_o therefore_o appear_v that_o we_o deny_v all_o ungodliness_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o this_o world_n may_v live_v sober_o just_o and_o godly_a i●_n this_o present_a world_n we_o see_v therefore_o that_o by_o this_o doctrine_n that_o wicked_a opinion_n be_v overthrow_v which_o teach_v that_o we_o do_v prevent_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o our_o merit_n which_o god_n foresee_v and_o on_o the_o contrary_a here_o we_o see_v how_o foul_o the_o bellygod_n of_o this_o world_n be_v deceive_v which_o reason_n thus_o if_o we_o be_v predestinate_a to_o eternal_a life_n and_o our_o predestination_n be_v certain_a and_o unchangeable_a what_o need_v we_o endeavour_v ourselves_o believe_v or_o do_v good_a work_n for_o howsoever_o it_o fall_v out_o and_o howesoever_o the_o elect_n do_v live_v undoubted_o they_o can_v perish_v because_o they_o be_v predestinate_a to_o eternal_a life_n alas_o poor_a wretch_n they_o see_v not_o that_o they_o sever_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v conjoin_v namely_o the_o end_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o end_n &_o that_o they_o break_v the_o chain_n which_o in_o no_o wise_a either_o can_v or_o must_v be_v loose_v whilst_o that_o they_o sever_v their_o call_n &_o justification_n yea_o and_o faith_n too_o &_o good_a work_n from_o predestination_n and_o glorification_n as_o though_o god_n do_v glorify_v they_o who_o he_o do_v predestinate_a before_o he_o call_v and_o justify_v they_o yea_o and_o before_o they_o can_v believe_v and_o show_v their_o quick_a and_o lively_a faith_n by_o work_n contrariwise_o let_v we_o learn_v what_o our_o duty_n be_v if_o any_o be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n they_o also_o be_v predestinate_a to_o the_o mean_n by_o which_o they_o come_v unto_o it_o and_o we_o believe_v as_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v that_o we_o be_v predestinate_a to_o eternal_a life_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v also_o believe_v that_o we_o have_v be_v elect_v to_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n that_o by_o they_o as_o by_o certain_a step_n we_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o eternal_a life_n and_o therefore_o so_o far_o must_v we_o be_v from_o neglect_v faith_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o good_a work_n &_o of_o a_o holy_a life_n that_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v rather_o our_o duty_n to_o keep_v faith_n in_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o to_o be_v conversant_a in_o good_a work_n which_o god_n have_v prepare_v that_o we_o may_v walk_v in_o they_o and_o because_o we_o can_v neither_o attain_v to_o the_o end_n nor_o the_o mean_n that_o bring_v we_o thereunto_o of_o ourselves_o therefore_o it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o crave_v they_o at_o god_n hand_n by_o prayer_n that_o he_o will_v give_v we_o faith_n and_o a_o care_n to_o do_v good_a work_n and_o increase_v they_o in_o us._n neither_o must_v we_o only_o ask_v they_o but_o also_o certain_o trust_v that_o we_o shall_v obtain_v they_o for_o christ_n his_o cause_n for_o if_o for_o all_o they_o which_o be_v predestinate_v to_o eternal_a life_n god_n have_v prepare_v faith_n by_o which_o they_o may_v believe_v and_o good_a work_n to_o walk_v in_o therefore_o if_o we_o believe_v as_o by_o god_n commandment_n we_o be_v bind_v that_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n elect_v to_o eternal_a glory_n we_o must_v also_o be_v persuade_v that_o before_o we_o depart_v hence_o he_o will_v give_v we_o true_a repentance_n increase_v true_a faith_n inflame_v we_o with_o love_n last_o that_o he_o will_v minister_v unto_o we_o abundant_o all_o thing_n in_o christ_n to_o obtain_v the_o end_n yea_o this_o confidence_n also_o and_o prayer_n it_o be_v one_o effect_n of_o predestination_n by_o which_o we_o get_v the_o rest_n therefore_o this_o doctrine_n we_o must_v hold_v that_o predestination_n to_o eternal_a life_n do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o mean_n of_o obtain_v it_o but_o rather_o establish_v they_o and_o therefore_o both_o these_o principle_n be_v true_a namely_o that_o the_o elect_v to_o life_n can_v perish_v and_o unless_o a_o man_n believe_v in_o christ_n and_o persevere_v unto_o the_o end_n in_o this_o faith_n work_v by_o love_n 3.36_o he_o shall_v perish_v the_o reason_n be_v because_o in_o predestination_n the_o mean_n &_o the_o end_n of_o it_o be_v so_o join_v together_o that_o the_o one_o can_v not_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o other_o wherefore_o whosoever_o hold_v not_o the_o mean_n unto_o the_o end_n amongst_o which_o faith_n be_v one_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o be_v never_o predestinate_a and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o perish_v as_o on_o the_o contrary_a he_o which_o hold_v faith_n must_v needs_o be_v save_v so_o the_o truth_n of_o these_o proposition_n be_v evident_a he_o which_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n have_v eternal_a life_n contrariwise_o he_o which_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o son_n the_o anger_n of_o god_n remain_v upon_o he_o because_o as_o a_o constant_a faith_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o election_n so_o obstinate_a infidelity_n be_v a_o token_n of_o reprobation_n finis_fw-la bradford_n answer_v to_o careless_a careless_a i_o be_o trouble_v with_o fear_n that_o my_o sin_n be_v not_o pardon_v bradford_n they_o be_v for_o god_n have_v give_v thou_o a_o penitent_a and_o believe_a heart_n that_o be_v a_o heart_n which_o desire_v to_o repent_v and_o believe_v for_o such_o a_o one_o be_v take_v of_o he_o he_o accept_v the_o will_n for_o the_o deed_n for_o a_o penitent_a and_o believe_a heart_n indeed_o trin-uni_a deo_fw-la gloria_fw-la a_o direction_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o tongve_n according_a to_o god_n word_n print_a by_o john_n legate_n printer_n to_o the_o university_n of_o cambridge_n 1600._o to_o the_o reader_n christian_n reader_n lamentable_a and_o fearful_a be_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o tongue_n among_o all_o sort_n &_o degree_n of_o man_n ever●_n where_o hence_o daily_o arise_v manifold_a sin_n against_o god_n and_o ●nnu●erable_a scandal_n and_o grievance_n to_o our_o brethren_n it_o will_v make_v a_o man_n heart_n to_o bleed_v to_o hear_v and_o consider_v how_o swear_v blaspheme_v curse_v speak_v ra●ling_a backbiting_a slander_v chide_v quarrel_v contend_v jest_a mock_v flatter_a lie_v dissemble_a vain_a and_o idle_a talk_a overflow_n in_o all_o place●_n so_o as_o man_n which_o fear_v god_n have_v better_o be_v any_o where_o then_o in_o the_o company_n of_o most_o man_n well_o thou_o be_v thou_o a_o man_n which_o have_v make_v little_a conscience_n of_o thy_o speech_n and_o talk_n repent_v serious_o of_o this_o sin_n and_o amend_v thy_o life_n lest_o for_o the_o abuse_n of_o thy_o tongue_n thou_o cry_v with_o dives_fw-la in_o hell_n send_v
honour_v thy_o father_n and_o thy_o mother_n that_o they_o may_v prolong_v thy_o day_n now_o they_o prolong_v the_o child_n day_n by_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o blessing_n on_o they_o and_o by_o such_o like_a duty_n it_o be_v a_o use_n in_o all_o place_n when_o a_o man_n neese_v to_o salute_v he_o by_o say_v christ_n help_v you_o but_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o word_n shall_v then_o be_v use_v more_o than_o at_o another_o time_n the_o reason_n be_v i._o it_o be_v a_o old_a custom_n fetch_v from_o the_o gentile_n before_o christ_n and_o have_v no_o ground_n at_o all_o for_o they_o use_v with_o the_o like_a word_n to_o wish_v man_n health_n 2._o because_o they_o think_v sneeze_n to_o be_v a_o sacred_a and_o holy_a thing_n and_o because_o some_o take_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o unhappy_a and_o evil_a success_n which_o indeed_o be_v otherwise_o ii_o if_o there_o be_v any_o danger_n in_o the_o brain_n before_o sneeze_n when_o a_o man_n have_v neesed_a the_o danger_n be_v past_a as_o learned_a physician_n teach_v therefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o the_o use_v such_o word_n then_o more_o than_o at_o cough_v against_o the_o practice_n of_o salute_v each_o other_o some_o thing_n may_v be_v object_v 1._o joh._n epist_n 2._o vers_fw-la 10._o if_o there_o come_v any_o unto_o you_o and_o bring_v not_o this_o doctrine_n receive_v he_o not_o to_o house_n neither_o bid_v he_o god_n speed_n answer_n this_o place_n do_v not_o forbid_v common_a civility_n and_o courtesy_n of_o man_n to_o man_n but_o only_a familiarity_n and_o acquaintance_n with_o heretic_n yea_o such_o acquaintance_n and_o familiarity_n as_o may_v seem_v to_o give_v approbation_n and_o applause_n to_o their_o bad_a proceed_n ii_o elisha_n send_v gehazi_n his_o servant_n to_o lay_v his_o staff_n on_o the_o dead_a child_n of_o the_o sunamite_n bid_v he_o if_o he_o meet_v any_o not_o to_o salute_v they_o and_o if_o they_o speak_v to_o he_o not_o to_o answer_v they_o 2._o king_n 4.29_o and_o when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n send_v his_o disciple_n to_o preach_v in_o judea_n he_o have_v they_o to_o salute_v no_o man_n by_o the_o way_n luk._n 10.4_o answ._n the_o intent_n of_o these_o two_o place_n be_v not_o to_o forbid_v man_n to_o salute_v other_o but_o rather_o to_o enjoin_v gehazi_n and_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n only_o to_o omit_v for_o that_o time_n the_o practice_n of_o the_o duty_n of_o common_a courtesy_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o may_v hinder_v or_o delay_v the_o performance_n of_o weighty_a affair_n our_o answer_n must_v be_v soft_a that_o anger_n be_v neither_o kindle_v nor_o increase_v 7,8_o a_o soft_a answer_n put_v away_o wrath_n but_o grievous_a word_n stir_v up_o anger_n nabal_n by_o churlish_a language_n provoke_v david_n to_o wrath_n but_o abigail_n by_o the_o contrary_n appease_v he_o gedeon_n speak_v gentle_o to_o the_o man_n of_o ephraim_n when_o they_o be_v angry_a against_o he_o and_o appease_v they_o for_o the_o text_n say_v 8.3_o when_o he_o have_v thus_o speak_v than_o their_o spirit_n abate_v towards_o he_o therefore_o solomon_n say_v well_o a_o joy_n come_v to_o a_o man_n by_o the_o answer_n of_o his_o mouth_n but_o how_o good_a be_v a_o word_n in_o due_a season_n now_o if_o any_o shall_v rail_v on_o we_o our_o duty_n be_v not_o to_o rail_v again_o 3.4_o bless_v they_o that_o persecute_v you_o bless_v i_o say_v and_o curse_v not_o be_v courteous_a not_o render_v evil_a for_o evil_n neither_o rebuke_n for_o rebuke_n but_o contrariwise_o bless_v know_v that_o you_o be_v thereunto_o call_v that_o you_o shall_v be_v heir_n of_o blessing_n this_o thing_n be_v notable_o practise_v by_o david_n psal._n 109.4_o for_o my_o friendship_n they_o be_v my_o adversary_n but_o i_o give_v myself_o to_o prayer_n and_o therefore_o in_o this_o case_n either_o silence_n be_v to_o be_v use_v or_o at_o the_o most_o only_o a_o just_a and_o manifest_a defence_n of_o our_o innocence_n to_o be_v make_v ezechias_n command_v the_o people_n to_o be_v silent_a 36._o and_o not_o to_o say_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o speech_n of_o rabsachai_n now_o flatter_v now_o threaten_v when_o eli_n speak_v hardly_o of_o anna_n and_o bid_v she_o put_v away_o her_o drunkenness_n she_o answer_v 15_o nay_o my_o lord_n i_o be_o a_o woman_n trouble_v in_o spirit_n i_o have_v neither_o drink_a wine_n nor_o strong_a drink_n but_o have_v pour_v out_o my_o soul_n before_o the_o lord_n thus_o joseph_n clear_v himself_o say_v 15._o i_o have_v do_v nothing_o wherefore_o they_o shall_v put_v i_o in_o the_o dungeon_n and_o daniel_n to_o nabuchodonosor_n unto_o thou_o o_o king_n have_v i_o do_v no_o hurt_n and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n when_o the_o jew_n say_v unto_o he_o 8.48,49_o say_v we_o not_o true_a that_o thou_o be_v a_o samaritan_n and_o have_v a_o devil_n answer_v i_o have_v not_o a_o devil_n but_o i_o honour_v my_o father_n and_o you_o have_v dishonour_v i_o and_o paul_n be_v to_o make_v a_o apology_n for_o himself_o begin_v thus_o 1._o man_n and_o brethren_n i_o have_v in_o all_o good_a conscience_n serve_v god_n unto_o this_o day_n now_o when_o a_o man_n have_v thus_o clear_v himself_o though_o his_o own_o word_n in_o his_o own_o behalf_n take_v no_o effect_n yet_o let_v he_o patient_o commit_v his_o cause_n to_o god_n who_o in_o time_n will_v manifest_v the_o truth_n and_o bring_v it_o to_o light_v as_o david_n do_v 26._o judge_v i_o o_o god_n say_v he_o for_o i_o have_v walk_v in_o min●_n innocence_n and_o again_o 32,33_o the_o wicked_a watch_v the_o righteous_a and_o seek_v to_o slay_v he_o but_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o leave_v he_o in_o his_o hand_n nor_o condemn_v he_o when_o he_o be_v judge_v meekness_n in_o reproof_n be_v when_o any_o shall_v admonish_v his_o brother_n of_o any_o fault_n for_o his_o amendment_n with_o the_o like_a moderation_n that_o surgeon_n use_v who_o be_v to_o set_v the_o arm_n or_o leg_n that_o be_v forth_o of_o joint_n handle_v it_o so_o tender_o that_o the_o patient_n shall_v scant_v feel_v when_o the_o bone_n fall_v in_o again_o this_o counsel_n paul_n give_v 6.1_o brethren_n if_o any_o man_n be_v fall_v by_o occasion_n into_o any_o fault_n you_o which_o be_v spiritual_a restore_v such_o a_o one_o or_o set_v he_o in_o joint_n again_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n this_o be_v practise_v by_o abraham_n towards_o lot_n when_o their_o herdsman_n be_v at_o variance_n say_v 13.8.9_o let_v there_o be_v i_o pray_v thou_o no_o strife_n between_o thou_o &_o i_o neither_o between_o my_o herdsman_n and_o thou_o for_o we_o be_v brethren_n and_o this_o be_v do_v four_o way_n first_o when_o we_o reprove_v a_o man_n general_o as_o nathan_n do_v david_n by_o a_o parable_n second_o 12._o when_o in_o the_o room_n of_o a_o reproof_n we_o put_v a_o exhortation_n in_o the_o exhortation_n insinuate_v a_o oblique_a reproof_n as_o when_o a_o man_n shall_v swear_v in_o his_o talk_n i_o shall_v not_o need_v always_o to_o say_v you_o do_v very_o ill_a to_o swear_v and_o so_o to_o dishonour_v god_n but_o i_o will_v lap_v it_o up_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o exhortation_n as_o pill_n be_v leap_v in_o sugar_n by_o say_v yea_o and_o nay_o yea_o and_o nay_o shall_v serve_v among_o us._n rebuke_v not_o a_o elder_a but_o exhort_v he_o as_o a_o father_n and_o young_a man_n as_o brethren_n 1._o say_v paul_n to_o timothy_n three_o when_o the_o reproof_n be_v propound_v in_o a_o man_n own_o person_n as_o though_o he_o be_v faulty_a which_o reprove_v paul_n practise_v this_o 4.6_o now_o these_o thing_n brethren_n say_v he_o i_o have_v figurative_o apply_v to_o my_o own_o self_n and_o apollo_n for_o your_o sake_n that_o you_o may_v learn_v by_o we_o that_o no_o man_n presume_v above_o that_o which_o be_v write_v four_o when_o the_o fault_n be_v direct_o reprove_v but_o yet_o partly_o with_o preface_n that_o we_o do_v it_o of_o love_n that_o we_o wish_v well_o to_o the_o party_n 6.1_o that_o we_o speak_v as_o consider_v ourselves_o that_o we_o also_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o the_o same_o fault_n and_o partly_o by_o frame_v the_o reproof_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o the_o party_n may_v see_v himself_o rather_o to_o be_v reprove_v by_o god_n then_o by_o we_o after_o this_o manner_n the_o inferior_a may_v admonish_v his_o superior_a especial_o when_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n of_o redress_n and_o he_o be_v to_o listen_v yield_v himself_o tractable_a naaman_n be_v advise_v by_o his_o servant_n who_o say_v 13._o father_n if_o the_o prophet_n have_v command_v thou_o a_o great_a thing_n will_v thou_o not_o have_v do_v it_o how_o much_o rather_o then_o when_o he_o say_v to_o thou_o wash_v &_o be_v clean_a then_o go_v he_o down_o
the_o wage_n of_o sin_n rom._n 6.22_o it_o be_v a_o enemy_n of_o christ_n 1._o cor._n 15._o and_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n hence_o it_o seem_v to_o follow_v that_o in_o and_o by_o death_n man_n receive_v their_o wage_n and_o payment_n for_o their_o sin_n that_o the_o day_n of_o death_n be_v the_o doleful_a day_n in_o which_o the_o enemy_n prevail_v against_o we_o that_o he_o which_o die_v be_v curse_v ans._n we_o must_v distinguish_v of_o death_n it_o must_v be_v consider_v two_o way_n first_o as_o it_o be_v by_o itself_o in_o his_o own_o nature_n second_o as_o it_o be_v alter_v and_o change_v by_o christ._n now_o death_n by_o itself_o consider_v be_v indeed_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n a_o enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o all_o his_o member_n and_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n yea_o the_o very_a suburb_n &_o gate_n of_o hell_n yet_o in_o the_o second_o respect_n it_o be_v not_o so_o for_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o plague_n or_o punishment_n &_o of_o a_o curse_n it_o be_v make_v a_o blessing_n and_o be_v become_v unto_o we_o a_o passage_n or_o mid-waie_n between_o this_o life_n and_o eternal_a life_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o little_a wicket_n or_o door_n whereby_o we_o pass_v out_o of_o this_o world_n and_o enter_v into_o heaven_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o say_n of_o solomon_n be_v most_o true_a for_o in_o the_o day_n of_o birth_n man_n be_v bear_v and_o bring_v forth_o into_o the_o vale_n of_o misery_n but_o afterward_o when_o they_o go_v hence_o have_v death_n alter_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n they_o enter_v into_o eternal_a joy_n and_o happiness_n with_o all_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n for_o ever_o the_o three_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o example_n of_o most_o worthy_a man_n who_o have_v make_v their_o prayer_n against_o death_n as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n who_o pray_v on_o this_o manner_n father_n if_o it_o be_v thy_o will_n let_v this_o cup_n pass_v from_o i_o yet_o not_o my_o will_n but_o thy_o will_n be_v do_v 6.4_o and_o david_n pray_v return_v o_o lord_n deliver_v my_o soul_n save_v i_o for_o thy_o mercy_n sake_n for_o in_o death_n there_o be_v no_o remembrance_n of_o thou_o in_o the_o grave_n who_o shall_v praise_v thou_o 38.10_o and_o ezechiah_n when_o the_o prophet_n esai_n bid_v he_o set_v his_o house_n in_o order_n and_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o must_v die_v weep_v sore_o and_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o death_n now_o by_o the_o example_n of_o these_o most_o worthy_a man_n yea_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o the_o day_n of_o death_n be_v the_o most_o terrible_a and_o doleful_a day_n of_o all_o answer_n when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n pray_v thus_o to_o his_o father_n he_o be_v in_o his_o agony_n and_o he_o then_o as_o our_o redeemer_n stand_v in_o our_o room_n and_o stead_n to_o suffer_v all_o thing_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v suffer_v in_o our_o own_o person_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o therefore_o he_o pray_v not_o simple_o against_o death_n but_o against_o the_o curse_a death_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o he_o fear_v not_o death_n itself_o which_o be_v the_o separation_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n but_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n which_o go_v with_o death_n namely_o the_o unspeakable_a wrath_n and_o indignation_n of_o god_n the_o first_o death_n trouble_v he_o not_o but_o the_o first_o and_o second_o join_v together_o touch_v david_n when_o he_o make_v the_o six_o psalm_n he_o be_v not_o only_o sick_a in_o body_n but_o also_o perplex_v with_o the_o great_a temptation_n of_o all_o in_o that_o he_o wrestle_v in_o conscience_n with_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n where_o he_o say_v lord_n rebuke_v i_o not_o in_o thy_o wrath_n and_o by_o this_o we_o see_v that_o he_o pray_v not_o simple_o against_o death_n but_o against_o death_n at_o that_o instant_n when_o he_o be_v in_o that_o grievous_a temptation_n for_o at_o other_o time_n he_o have_v no_o such_o fear_n of_o death_n as_o he_o himself_o testify_v say_v 23.4_o though_o i_o shall_v walk_v through_o the_o valley_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n i_o will_v fear_v no_o evil_a therefore_o he_o pray_v against_o death_n only_o as_o it_o be_v join_v with_o the_o apprehension_n of_o god_n wrath_n last_o ezechiah_n pray_v against_o death_n not_o only_o because_o he_o desire_v to_o live_v and_o do_v service_n to_o god_n in_o his_o kingdom_n but_o upon_o a_o further_a and_o more_o special_a regard_n because_o when_o the_o prophet_n bring_v the_o message_n of_o death_n he_o be_v without_o issue_n and_o have_v none_o of_o his_o own_o body_n to_o succeed_v he_o in_o his_o kingdom_n it_o will_v be_v say_v what_o warrant_v have_v ezechiah_n to_o pray_v against_o death_n for_o this_o cause_n answer_n his_o warrant_n be_v good_a for_o god_n have_v make_v a_o particular_a promise_n to_o david_n and_o his_o posterity_n after_o he_o 8.25_o that_o so_o long_o as_o they_o fear_v god_n and_o walk_v in_o his_o commandment_n they_o shall_v not_o want_v issue_n to_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o kingdom_n after_o they_o now_o ezechiah_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o prophet_n message_n remember_v what_o promise_n god_n have_v make_v and_o how_o he_o for_o his_o part_n have_v keep_v the_o condition_n thereof_o in_o that_o he_o have_v walk_v before_o god_n with_o a_o upright_o heart_n and_o have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v acceptable_a in_o his_o sight_n he_o pray_v against_o death_n not_o so_o much_o because_o he_o fear_v the_o danger_n of_o it_o but_o because_o he_o want_v issue_n this_o prayer_n god_n accept_v &_o hear_v and_o he_o add_v fifteen_o year_n unto_o his_o day_n &_o two_o year_n after_o give_v he_o manasses_n the_o four_o objection_n be_v this_o that_o those_o which_o have_v be_v repute_v to_o be_v of_o the_o better_a sort_n of_o man_n oftentimes_o have_v miserable_a end_n for_o some_o end_n their_o day_n despair_v some_o rave_v and_o blaspheme_v some_o strange_o torment_v it_o may_v seem_v therefore_o that_o the_o day_n of_o death_n be_v the_o day_n of_o great_a woe_n and_o misery_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o of_o all_o general_o that_o we_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o the_o estate_n of_o any_o man_n before_o god_n by_o outward_a thing_n whether_o they_o be_v blessing_n or_o judgement_n whether_o they_o fall_v in_o life_n or_o death_n for_o as_o solomon_n say_v all_o thing_n come_v alike_o to_o all_o and_o the_o same_o condition_n be_v to_o the_o just_a and_o the_o wicked_a to_o the_o good_a &_o to_o the_o pure_a &_o to_o the_o pollute_a &_o to_o he_o that_o sacrifice_v &_o to_o he_o that_o sacrifice_v not_o as_o be_v the_o good_a so_o be_v the_o sinner_n he_o that_o swear_v as_o he_o that_o fear_v a●_n oath_n second_o i_o answer_v the_o particular_n which_o be_v allege_v on_o this_o manner_n and_o first_o of_o all_o touch_a despair_n it_o be_v true_a that_o not_o only_o wicked_a and_o loose_a person_n despair_v in_o death_n but_o also_o repentant_a sinner_n who_o oftentimes_o in_o their_o sickness_n testify_v of_o themselves_o that_o be_v alive_a and_o lie_v in_o their_o bed_n they_o feel_v themselves_o as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v in_o hell_n and_o to_o apprehend_v the_o very_a pang_n and_o torment_n thereof_o and_o i_o doubt_v not_o for_o all_o this_o but_o that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n most_o dear_a unto_o he_o may_v through_o the_o gulf_n of_o desperation_n attain_v to_o everlasting_a happiness_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o manner_n of_o god_n deal_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o salvation_n all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v do_v in_o and_o by_o their_o contrary_n in_o the_o creation_n all_o thing_n be_v make_v not_o of_o something_o but_o of_o nothing_o clean_o contrary_a to_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o work_n of_o redemption_n god_n give_v life_n not_o by_o life_n but_o by_o death_n and_o if_o we_o consider_v aright_o of_o christ_n upon_o the_o cross_n we_o shall_v see_v our_o paradise_n out_o of_o paradise_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o hell_n for_o out_o of_o his_o own_o curse_a death_n do_v he_o bring_v we_o life_n and_o eternal_a happiness_n likewise_o in_o effectual_a vocation_n when_o it_o please_v god_n to_o convert_v and_o turn_v man_n unto_o he_o he_o do_v it_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o gospel_n preach_v which_o in_o reason_n shall_v drive_v all_o man_n from_o god_n for_o it_o be_v as_o contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n as_o fire_n to_o water_n and_o light_n to_o darkness_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o though_o it_o be_v thus_o against_o the_o disposition_n and_o heart_n of_o
word_n require_v two_o thing_n a_o preparation_n before_o death_n and_o a_o right_a behaviour_n and_o disposition_n in_o death_n the_o preparation_n unto_o death_n be_v a_o action_n of_o a_o repentant_a sinner_n whereby_o he_o make_v himself_o fit_n and_o ready_a to_o die_v and_o be_v a_o duty_n very_o necessary_a to_o which_o we_o be_v bind_v by_o god_n commandment_n for_o there_o be_v sundry_a place_n of_o scripture_n which_o do_v straight_o enjoin_v we_o to_o watch_v and_o pray_v and_o to_o make_v ourselves_o ready_a every_o way_n against_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n to_o judgement_n now_o the_o same_o place_n do_v withal_o bind_v we_o to_o make_v preparation_n against_o death_n at_o which_o time_n god_n come_v to_o judgement_n unto_o we_o particular_o again_o look_v as_o death_n leave_v a_o man_n so_o shall_v the_o last_o judgement_n find_v he_o and_o so_o shall_v he_o abide_v eternal_o there_o may_v be_v change_n and_o conversion_n from_o evil_a to_o good_a in_o this_o life_n but_o after_o death_n there_o be_v no_o change_n at_o all_o therefore_o a_o preparation_n to_o death_n can_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v omit_v of_o he_o that_o desire_v to_o make_v a_o happy_a and_o bless_a end_n this_o preparation_n be_v twofold_a general_a and_o particular_a general_n preparation_n be_v that_o whereby_o a_o man_n prepare_v himself_o to_o die_v through_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o his_o life_n a_o duty_n most_o needful_a which_o must_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v omit_v the_o reason_n be_v these_o first_o of_o all_o death_n which_o be_v certain_a be_v most_o uncertain_a i_o say_v it_o be_v certain_a because_o no_o man_n can_v eschew_v death_n and_o it_o be_v uncertain_a three_o way_n first_o in_o regard_n of_o time_n for_o no_o man_n know_v when_o he_o shall_v die_v second_o in_o regard_n of_o place_n for_o no_o man_n know_v where_o he_o shall_v die_v whether_o in_o his_o bed_n or_o in_o the_o field_n whether_o by_o sea_n or_o by_o land_n three_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o kind_n of_o death_n for_o no_o man_n know_v whether_o he_o shall_v die_v of_o a_o linger_a or_o sudden_a of_o a_o violent_a or_o natural_a death_n hence_o it_o follow_v that_o man_n shall_v every_o day_n prepare_v themselves_o to_o death_n indeed_o if_o we_o can_v know_v when_o where_o and_o how_o we_o shall_v die_v the_o case_n be_v otherwise_o but_o see_v we_o know_v none_o of_o these_o it_o stand_v we_o in_o hand_n to_o look_v about_o us._n a_o second_o reason_n serve_v further_o to_o persuade_v we_o be_v this_o the_o most_o dangerous_a thing_n of_o all_o in_o this_o world_n be_v to_o neglect_v all_o preparation_n to_o make_v this_o point_n more_o manifest_a i_o will_v use_v this_o comparison_n a_o certain_a man_n pursue_v by_o a_o unicorn_n in_o his_o flight_n fall_v into_o a_o dungeon_n and_o in_o his_o fall_n take_v hold_v and_o hang_v by_o the_o arm_n of_o a_o tree_n now_o as_o he_o thus_o hang_v look_v downward_o he_o see_v two_o worm_n gnaw_v at_o the_o root_n of_o the_o tree_n and_o as_o he_o look_v upward_o he_o see_v and_o hive_n of_o most_o sweet_a honey_n whereupon_o he_o climb_v up_o unto_o it_o and_o sit_v by_o it_o feed_v thereon_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n while_o he_o be_v thus_o sit_v the_o two_o worm_n gnaw_v in_o piece_n the_o root_n of_o the_o tree_n which_o do_v tree_n and_o man_n and_o all_o fall_n into_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o dungeon_n now_o this_o unicorn_n be_v death_n the_o man_n that_o fly_v be_v every_o one_o of_o we_o and_o every_o live_a man_n the_o pit_n over_o which_o he_o hang_v be_v hell_n the_o arm_n of_o the_o tree_n be_v life_n itself_o the_o two_o worm_n be_v day_n and_o night_n the_o continuance_n whereof_o be_v the_o whole_a life_n of_o man_n the_o hive_n of_o honey_n be_v the_o pleasure_n and_o profit_n and_o honour_n of_o this_o world_n to_o which_o when_o man_n whole_o give_v themselves_o not_o consider_v their_o end_n till_o the_o t●ee_v root_n that_o be_v this_o temporal_a life_n be_v cut_v off_o which_o be_v once_o do_v they_o plunge_v themselves_o quite_o into_o the_o gulf_n of_o hell_n by_o this_o we_o see_v that_o there_o be_v good_a cause_n that_o man_n shall_v not_o defer_v their_o preparation_n till_o the_o time_n of_o sickness_n but_o rather_o every_o day_n make_v themselves_o ready_a against_o the_o day_n of_o death_n but_o some_o will_v say_v it_o shall_v suffice_v if_o i_o prepare_v myself_o to_o pray_v when_o i_o begin_v to_o be_v sick_a ans._n these_o man_n great_o deceive_v themselves_o for_o the_o time_n than_o be_v most_o unfit_a to_o begin_v a_o preparation_n because_o all_o the_o sense_n and_o power_n of_o the_o body_n be_v occupy_v about_o the_o pain_n and_o trouble_n of_o the_o disease_n and_o the_o sick_a party_n be_v ex●rcised_v partly_o in_o conference_n with_o the_o physician_n partly_o with_o the_o minister_n about_o his_o soul_n health_n and_o matter_n of_o conscience_n and_o partly_o with_o friend_n that_o come_v to_o visit_v therefore_o there_o must_v some_o preparation_n go_v before_o in_o the_o time_n of_o health_n when_o the_o whole_a man_n with_o all_o the_o power_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n be_v at_o liberty_n again_o there_o be_v some_o other_o which_o imagine_v and_o say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v repent_v when_o he_o will_v even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o death_n and_o that_o such_o repentance_n be_v sufficient_a ans._n it_o be_v false_a which_o say_v they_o for_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o man_n to_o repent_v when_o he_o himself_o will_n when_o god_n will_v he_o may_v it_o be_v not_o in_o he_o that_o will_v or_o run_v but_o in_o god_n that_o have_v mercy_n and_o christ_n say_v that_o many_o shall_v seek_v to_o enter_v into_o heaven_n and_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a but_o why_o so_o because_o they_o seek_v when_o it_o be_v too_o late_o namely_o when_o the_o time_n of_o grace_n be_v past_a therefore_o it_o be_v exceed_a folly_n for_o man_n so_o much_o as_o once_o to_o dream_v that_o they_o may_v have_v repentance_n at_o command_n nay_o it_o be_v a_o just_a judgement_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v condemn_v of_o god_n in_o death_n that_o do_v contemn_v god_n in_o their_o life_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v quite_o be_v forget_v of_o god_n in_o sickness_n that_o do_v forget_v god_n in_o their_o health_n again_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o late_a repentance_n be_v seldom_o or_o never_o true_a repentance_n it_o be_v sick_a like_o the_o party_n himself_o common_o languish_v and_o die_v together_o with_o he_o repentance_n shall_v be_v voluntary_a as_o all_o obedience_n to_o god_n aught_o but_o repentance_n take_v up_o in_o sickness_n be_v usual_o constrain_v and_o extort_a by_o the_o fear_n of_o hell_n and_o other_o judgement_n of_o god_n for_o cross_n affliction_n and_o sickness_n will_v cause_v the_o gross_a hypocrite_n that_o ever_o be_v to_o stoop_v and_o buckle_v under_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o to_o dissemble_v faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o every_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o though_o he_o have_v they_o as_o full_o as_o any_o of_o the_o true_a servant_n of_o god_n whereas_o indeed_o he_o want_v they_o altogether_o wherefore_o such_o repentance_n common_o be_v but_o counterfeit_n for_o in_o true_a and_o sound_a repentance_n man_n must_v forsake_v their_o sin_n but_o in_o this_o the_o sin_n forsake_v the_o man_n who_o leave_v all_o his_o evil_a way_n only_o upon_o this_o that_o he_o be_v constrain_v to_o l●ave_v the_o world_n wherefore_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n great_o to_o be_v wish_v that_o man_n will_v repent_v and_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o die_v in_o the_o time_n of_o health_n before_o the_o day_n of_o death_n or_o sickness_n come_v last_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o one_o of_o the_o thief_n repent_v upon_o the_o cross_n answ._n the_o thief_n be_v call_v after_o the_o eleven_o hour_n at_o the_o point_n of_o the_o twelve_o when_o he_o be_v now_o die_v and_o draw_v on_o therefore_o his_o conversion_n be_v altogether_o miraculous_a and_o extraordinary_a and_o there_o be_v a_o special_a reason_n why_o christ_n will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v call_v then_o that_o while_o he_o be_v in_o suffering_n he_o may_v show_v forth_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o passion_n that_o all_o which_o see_v the_o one_o may_v also_o acknowledge_v the_o other_o now_o it_o be_v not_o good_a for_o man_n to_o make_v a_o ordinary_a rule_n of_o a_o extraordinary_a example_n thus_o than_o this_o point_n be_v manifest_a that_o a_o general_a preparation_n must_v be_v make_v let_v we_o now_o see_v in_o what_o manner_n it_o must_v be_v do_v and_o for_o the_o right_n do_v of_o it_o ●u●e_v duty_n must_v be_v practise_v in_o the_o ●ourse_n of_o our_o life_n the_o first_o i●_n the_o meditation_n of_o death_n in_o the_o life_n time_n
and_o right_a judgement_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o any_o man_n without_o a_o particular_a rehearsal_n of_o his_o sin_n for_o he_o which_o sound_o and_o true_o repent_v of_o one_o or_o some_o few_o sin_n repent_v of_o all_o second_o this_o confession_n be_v overturn_v by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o prophet_n &_o apostle_n who_o not_o only_o absolve_v particular_a person_n but_o also_o whole_a church_n without_o exaction_n of_o auricular_a confession_n when_o nathan_n the_o prophet_n have_v rebuke_v david_n for_o his_o two_o great_a &_o horrible_a crime_n david_n touch_v with_o remorse_n say_v 12._o i_o have_v sin_v and_o nathan_n present_o without_o further_a examination_n declare_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n that_o his_o sin_n be_v forgive_v he_o three_o it_o can_v not_o be_v prove_v by_o any_o good_a and_o sufficient_a proof_n that_o this_o confession_n be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n till_o after_o five_o or_o six_o hundred_o year_n be_v expire_v for_o the_o confession_n which_o be_v then_o in_o use_n be_v either_o public_a before_o the_o church_n or_o the_o open_n of_o a_o public_a fault_n to_o some_o private_a person_n in_o secret_a therefore_o to_o urge_v sick_a man_n unto_o it_o lie_v at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n be_v to_o lay_v more_o burden_n on_o they_o than_o ever_o god_n appoint_v and_o whereas_o they_o make_v it_o a_o necessary_a thing_n to_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n in_o the_o time_n of_o sickness_n towards_o death_n and_o that_o private_o of_o the_o sick_a party_n alone_o they_o have_v no_o warrant_n for_o their_o practice_n and_o opinion_n for_o in_o the_o want_n of_o the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v no_o danger_n but_o in_o the_o contempt_n and_o the_o very_a contempt_n itself_o be_v a_o sin_n which_o may_v be_v pardon_v if_o we_o repent_v and_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o sick_a man_n shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n if_o they_o receive_v it_o not_o in_o death_n because_o the_o fruit_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n once_o receive_v be_v not_o to_o be_v restrain_v to_o the_o time_n of_o receive_v but_o it_o extend_v itself_o to_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o man_n life_n afterward_o again_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v no_o private_a action_n but_o mere_o ecclesiastical_a and_o therefore_o to_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o meeting_n and_o assembly_n of_o god_n people_n as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n prescribe_v when_o he_o say_v 11.20_o do_v you_o this_o and_o paul_n in_o say_v when_o you_o come_v together_o but_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o the_o israelite_n do_v eat_v the_o paschal_n lamb_n in_o their_o house_n when_o they_o be_v in_o egypt_n answ._n the_o israelite_n have_v then_o no_o liberty_n to_o make_v any_o public_a meeting_n for_o that_o end_n &_o god_n command_v that_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n shall_v be_v eat_v in_o all_o the_o house_n of_o the_o isaraelite_n at_o one_o &_o the_o same_o instant_n and_o that_o in_o effect_n be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v public_a again_o they_o allege_v a_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a which_o decree_v that_o man_n be_v about_o to_o die_v must_v receive_v the_o eucharist_n &_o not_o be_v viatico_fw-la deprive_v of_o the_o provision_n of_o food_n necessary_a for_o their_o journey_n ans._n the_o council_n make_v no_o decree_n touch_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o all_o they_o that_o die_v but_o to_o such_o only_a as_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o faith_n in_o persecution_n or_o fall_v into_o any_o other_o notorious_a crime_n and_o be_v thereupon_o excommunicate_a and_o so_o remain_v till_o death_n &_o either_o then_o or_o somewhat_o before_o testify_v their_o repentance_n for_o their_o offence_n and_o the_o canon_n be_v make_v for_o this_o end_n that_o such_o person_n may_v be_v assure_v that_o they_o be_v again_o receive_v into_o the_o church_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n depart_v with_o more_o comfort_n three_o it_o be_v object_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n part_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v carry_v by_o a_o lad_n to_o serapion_n a_o age_a man_n 36._o lie_v sick_a in_o his_o bed_n answ._n it_o be_v indeed_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n from_o the_o very_a beginning_n that_o the_o element_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n shall_v be_v send_v by_o some_o of_o the_o deacon_n to_o the_o sick_a which_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o assembly_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o here_o be_v no_o foot_n for_o private_a communion_n for_o the_o eucharist_n be_v only_o then_o send_v when_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n do_v open_o communicate_v and_o such_o as_o be_v then_o absent_a only_a by_o reason_n of_o sickness_n and_o desire_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o that_o bless_a communion_n be_v to_o be_v repute_v as_o pre●ent_v last_o it_o be_v object_v 6._o that_o it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n in_o former_a time_n to_o carry_v part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n home_o to_o their_o house_n and_o to_o reserve_v it_o till_o the_o time_n of_o necessity_n as_o the_o time_n of_o sickness_n &_o such_o like_a ans._n the_o reservation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v but_o a_o superstitious_a practice_n though_o it_o be_v ancient_a for_o out_o of_o the_o administration_n that_o be_v before_o it_o begin_v and_o after_o it_o be_v end_v the_o sacrament_n cease_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o the_o element_n to_o be_v element_n as_o for_o the_o practice_n of_o they_o that_o use_v to_o cram_v the_o eucharist_n into_o the_o mouth_n of_o they_o that_o be_v decease_v it_o be_v not_o only_o superstitious_a but_o also_o very_o absurd_a as_o for_o the_o annoil_a of_o the_o sick_a that_o be_v the_o anoint_v of_o the_o body_n special_o the_o organ_n or_o instrument_n of_o the_o sense_n that_o the_o party_n may_v obtain_v the_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o comfort_n against_o all_o temptation_n of_o the_o devil_n in_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n and_o strength_n more_o easy_o to_o bear_v the_o pang_n of_o sickness_n and_o the_o pang_n of_o death_n and_o be_v again_o restore_v to_o his_o corporal_a health_n if_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o soul_n it_o be_v but_o a_o dotage_n of_o man_n brain_n &_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o show_n of_o reason_n to_o justify_v it_o the_o five_o of_o james_n be_v common_o allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n but_o the_o anoint_v there_o mention_v be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n with_o this_o greasy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o papist_n for_o that_o anoint_v of_o the_o body_n be_v a_o ceremony_n use_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o when_o they_o put_v in_o practice_v this_o miraculous_a gift_n of_o heal_a which_o gift_n be_v now_o cease_v second_o 5.16_o that_o anoint_v have_v a_o promise_n that_o the_o party_n shall_v recover_v his_o health_n but_o this_o popish_a anoint_v have_v no_o such_o promise_n because_o for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o person_n thus_o anoint_v die_v afterward_o without_o recovery_n whereas_o those_o which_o be_v anoint_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n always_o recover_v three_o the_o ancient_a anoint_v serve_v only_o for_o the_o procure_n of_o health_n but_o this_o tend_v further_a to_o the_o procure_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o strength_n in_o temptation_n thus_o have_v see_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n i_o come_v now_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o true_a and_o right_a manner_n of_o make_v particular_a preparation_n before_o death_n which_o contain_v three_o sort_n of_o duty_n one_o concern_v god_n the_o other_o concern_v a_o man_n own_o self_n the_o three_o concern_v our_o neighbour_n the_o first_o concern_v god_n be_v to_o seek_v to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o he_o in_o christ_n though_o we_o have_v be_v long_o assure_v of_o his_o favour_n all_o other_o duty_n must_v come_v after_o in_o the_o second_o place_n and_o they_o be_v of_o little_a or_o no_o effect_n without_o this_o now_o this_o reconciliation_n must_v be_v seek_v for_o and_o be_v obtain_v by_o a_o renew_n of_o our_o former_a faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o they_o must_v be_v renew_v on_o this_o manner_n so_o soon_o as_o a_o man_n shall_v feel_v any_o manner_n of_o sickness_n to_o seize_v upon_o his_o body_n he_o must_v consider_v with_o himself_o whence_o it_o arise_v and_o after_o serious_a consideration_n he_o shall_v find_v that_o it_o come_v not_o by_o chance_n or_o fortune_n but_o by_o the_o special_a providence_n of_o god_n this_o do_v he_o m●st_v go_v yet_o further_o and_o consider_v for_o what_o cause_n the_o lord_n shall_v afflict_v his_o body_n with_o any_o sickness_n or_o disease_n and_o he_o shall_v find_v by_o god_n word_n that_o sickness_n come_v ordinary_o and_o usual_o of_o sin_n 3.36_o wherefore_o be_v the_o live_a man_n sorrowful_a man_n
uncalled_a person_n call_v be_v all_o such_o to_o who_o god_n in_o mercy_n have_v offer_v the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o have_v reveal_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o some_o measure_n more_o or_o less_o by_o mean_n either_o ordinary_a or_o extraordinary_a all_o such_o i_o think_v be_v straight_o bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o believe_v and_o obey_v the_o gospel_n for_o that_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o man_n shall_v be_v judge_v in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n must_v first_o of_o all_o bind_v their_o conscience_n in_o this_o life_n consider_v absolution_n and_o condemnation_n be_v according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v do_v in_o this_o life_n but_o by_o the_o gospel_n all_o man_n that_o have_v be_v call_v shall_v be_v judge_v as_o paul_n say_v rom._n 2.16_o god_n shall_v judge_v the_o secret_n of_o man_n by_o jesus_n christ_n according_a to_o my_o gospel_n and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v have_v life_n everlasting_a he_o which_o believe_v not_o be_v already_o condemn_v it_o remain_v therefore_o that_o the_o gospel_n bind_v the_o conscience_n of_o such_o man_n in_o this_o life_n by_o this_o very_a point_n we_o be_v all_o put_v in_o mind_n not_o to_o content_v ourselves_o with_o this_o that_o we_o have_v a_o like_n to_o the_o gospel_n and_o do_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v true_a though_o many_o protestant_n in_o these_o our_o day_n think_v it_o sufficient_a both_o in_o life_n and_o death_n if_o they_o hold_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n alone_o in_o christ_n without_o the_o merit_n of_o man_n work_n but_o we_o must_v go_v yet_o further_o and_o enter_v into_o a_o practice_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n know_v that_o the_o gospel_n do_v as_o well_o bind_v conscience_n as_o the_o law_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o obey_v will_v as_o well_o condemn_v man_n uncalled_a be_v such_o as_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n by_o reason_n the_o gospel_n be_v never_o reveal_v unto_o they_o nor_o mean_n of_o revelation_n offer_v that_o there_o have_v be_v such_o in_o former_a age_n i_o make_v manifest_a thus_o the_o world_n since_o the_o creation_n may_v be_v distinguish_v into_o four_o age_n the_o first_o from_o the_o creation_n to_o the_o flood_n the_o second_o from_o the_o flood_n to_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n the_o three_o from_o the_o give_n of_o the_o law_n to_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o four_o from_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o last_o judgement_n now_o in_o the_o three_o former_a age_n there_o be_v a_o distinction_n of_o the_o world_n into_o two_o sort_n of_o man_n whereof_o one_o be_v a_o people_n of_o god_n the_o other_o no-people_n in_o the_o first_o age_n in_o the_o family_n of_o seth_n no_o etc._n etc._n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o all_o other_o family_n the_o son_n of_o man_n gen._n 6.2_o in_o the_o second_o age_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o son_n of_o the_o promise_n rom._n 9.7_o in_o the_o three_o jew_n and_o gentile_n the_o jew_n be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n all_o nation_n beside_o no-church_n but_o in_o the_o last_o age_n this_o distinction_n be_v take_v away_o when_o the_o apostle_n have_v a_o commission_n give_v they_o that_o be_v never_o give_v before_o to_o any_o namely_o to_o go_v teach_v not_o only_o the_o jew_n but_o all_o nation_n now_o this_o distinction_n arise_v of_o this_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o reveal_v to_o the_o world_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o scripture_n witness_n the_o prophet_n esai_n say_v 52.14_o that_o king_n shall_v shut_v their_o mouth_n at_o christ_n because_o that_o which_o have_v not_o be_v tell_v they_o they_o shall_v see_v and_o that_o which_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v shall_v they_o understand_v and_o 55._o 5._o that_o a_o nation_n that_o know_v he_o not_o shall_v run_v unto_o he_o paul_n say_v to_o the_o ephesian_n that_o in_o former_a time_n they_o be_v without_o god_n and_o without_o christ_n stranger_n from_o the_o covenant_n eph._n 2.12_o and_o to_o the_o athenian_n he_o say_v that_o the_o time_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v time_n of_o ignorance_n act._n 17.30_o and_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v think_v that_o this_o ignorance_n be_v affect_v paul_n say_v further_a that_o god_n in_o time_n past_o suffer_v the_o gentile_n to_o walk_v in_o their_o own_o way_n act._n 14._o 16._o and_o that_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v keep_v secret_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v now_o in_o the_o last_o age_n reveal_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n rom._n 16.25_o some_o allege_v that_o the_o jew_n be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v traffic_n with_o all_o nation_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v spread_v some_o little_a knowledge_n of_o the_o messiah_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o answer_v again_o that_o the_o conference_n and_o speech_n of_o jewish_a merchant_n with_o foreigner_n be_v no_o sufficient_a mean_n to_o publish_v the_o promise_n of_o salvation_n by_o christ_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n first_o because_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v always_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o receive_v any_o new_a and_o false_a religion_n then_o to_o teach_v their_o own_o second_o because_o the_o very_a jew_n themselves_o though_o they_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o ceremony_n of_o their_o religion_n yet_o the_o substance_n thereof_o which_o be_v christ_n figure_v by_o external_a ceremony_n they_o know_v not_o and_o hereupon_o the_o pharisee_n when_o they_o make_v a_o proselyte_n they_o make_v he_o ten_o time_n more_o the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n than_o themselves_o three_o because_o man_n be_v seldom_o or_o never_o suffer_v to_o profess_v or_o make_v any_o speech_n of_o their_o religion_n in_o foreign_a country_n again_o if_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o the_o doctrine_n be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o man_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n may_v have_v read_v search_v and_o know_v if_o they_o will_v i_o answer_v that_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o jew_n alone_o rom._n 3.2_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o give_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o also_o the_o psalmist_n testify_v he_o show_v his_o word_n unto_o jacob_n 147.8_o his_o statute_n and_o his_o judgement_n unto_o israel_n he_o have_v not_o deal_v so_o with_o every_o nation_n neither_o have_v they_o know_v his_o judgement_n now_o touch_v such_o person_n as_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v of_o christ_n though_o they_o be_v apt_a and_o fit_a to_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n by_o the_o gospel_n in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v the_o creature_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o indeed_o actual_o bind_v till_o such_o time_n as_o the_o gospel_n be_v reveal_v or_o at_o the_o least_o mean_n of_o revelation_n offer_v reason_n hereof_o may_v be_v these_o i._n whatsoever_o doctrine_n or_o law_n do_v bind_v conscience_n must_v in_o some_o part_n be_v know_v by_o nature_n or_o by_o grace_n or_o by_o both_o the_o understanding_n must_v first_o of_o all_o conceive_v or_o at_o the_o least_o have_v mean_n of_o conceive_v before_o conscience_n can_v constrain_v because_o it_o bind_v by_o virtue_n of_o know_a conclusion_n in_o the_o mind_n therefore_o thing_n that_o be_v altogether_o unknown_a and_o unconceived_a of_o the_o understanding_n do_v not_o bind_v in_o conscience_n now_o the_o gospel_n be_v altogether_o unknown_a and_o unconceived_a of_o many_o as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v and_o therefore_o it_o bind_v not_o they_o in_o conscience_n ii_o paul_n say_v rom._n 2.12_o they_o which_o sin_n without_o the_o law_n write_v shall_v be_v condemn_v without_o the_o law_n therefore_o they_o which_o sin_n without_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v condemn_v without_o the_o gospel_n and_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v condemn_v without_o the_o gospel_n after_o this_o life_n be_v not_o bind_v by_o it_o in_o this_o life_n augustine_n the_o most_o judicial_a divine_a of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n upon_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n joh._n but_o now_o they_o have_v no_o excuse_n for_o their_o sin_n say_v on_o this_o manner_n a_o doubt_n may_v be_v move_v whether_o they_o to_o who_o christ_n have_v not_o come_v neither_o have_v speak_v unto_o they_o have_v a_o excuse_n for_o their_o sin_n for_o if_o they_o have_v it_o not_o why_o be_v it_o say_v that_o these_o namely_o the_o jew_n have_v no_o excuse_n because_o he_o come_v and_o speak_v to_o they_o and_o if_o they_o have_v it_o whether_o it_o be_v that_o their_o punishment_n may_v be_v take_v away_o quite_o or_o in_o part_n lessen_v to_o these_o demand_n to_o my_o capacity_n as_o the_o lord_n shall_v enable_v i_o
certain_a extraordinary_a power_n whereby_o god_n enable_v to_o plague_n and_o punish_v rebellious_a offender_n with_o grievous_a judgement_n not_o in_o their_o soul_n but_o in_o their_o body_n alone_o with_o this_o rod_n paul_n smite_v elimas_n blind_a and_o peter_n smite_v ananias_n and_o saphira_n with_o bodily_a death_n and_o it_o may_v be_v that_o paul_n by_o his_o power_n do_v give_v up_o the_o incestuous_a man_n when_o he_o be_v excommunicate_a to_o be_v vex_v in_o his_o body_n and_o torment_v by_o the_o devil_n but_o that_o by_o this_o rod_n the_o apostle_n can_v smite_v conscience_n it_o can_v not_o be_v prove_v argum._n 8.1_o tim._n 3._o paul_n make_v a_o law_n that_o none_o have_v two_o wife_n shall_v be_v ordain_v a_o bishop_n now_o this_o law_n be_v positive_a and_o ecclesiastical_a and_o bind_v conscience_n answer_n paul_n be_v not_o the_o maker_n of_o this_o law_n but_o god_n himself_o who_o ordain_v that_o in_o marriage_n not_o three_o but_o two_o alone_o shall_v be_v one_o flesh_n &_o that_o they_o which_o serve_v at_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v holy_a and_o to_o grant_v that_o this_o law_n be_v a_o new_a law_n beside_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n yet_o do_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o paul_n be_v the_o maker_n of_o it_o because_o he_o use_v not_o to_o deliver_v any_o doctrine_n to_o the_o church_n but_o which_o he_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n argum._n 9_o luk._n 10._o he_o which_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o ans._n these_o word_n proper_o concern_v the_o apostle_n and_o do_v not_o in_o like_a manner_n belong_v to_o the_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o end_n of_o these_o word_n be_v not_o to_o confirm_v any_o apostolical_a authority_n in_o make_v law_n to_o the_o conscience_n but_o to_o signify_v the_o privilege_n which_o he_o have_v vouchsafe_v they_o above_o all_o other_o that_o he_o will_v so_o far_o forth_o assist_v they_o with_o his_o spirit_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o err_v or_o be_v deceive_v in_o teach_v and_o publish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n though_o otherwise_o they_o be_v sinful_a man_n according_a to_o math._n 10._o it_o be_v not_o you_o that_o speak_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o my_o father_n which_o speak_v in_o you_o and_o the_o promise_n to_o be_v lead_v into_o all_o truth_n be_v direct_v unto_o they_o argum._n 10.1_o cor._n 11._o i_o praise_v you_o that_o you_o keep_v my_o commandment_n answ._n paul_n deliver_v nothing_o of_o his_o own_o concern_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o that_o which_o he_o receive_v from_o christ._n the_o precept_n here_o mean_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o rule_n of_o decency_n and_o comely_a order_n in_o the_o congregation_n and_o though_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v obey_v yet_o paul_n meaning_n be_v not_o to_o bind_v any_o man_n conscience_n therewith_o for_o of_o great_a matter_n he_o say_v this_o i_o speak_v for_o your_o commodity_n &_o not_o to_o entangle_v you_o in_o a_o snare_n 1._o cor._n 7.35_o argum._n 11._o counsel_n of_o ancient_a father_n when_o they_o command_v or_o forbid_v any_o thing_n do_v it_o with_o threaten_v of_o a_o curse_n to_o the_o offender_n ans._n the_o church_n in_o former_a time_n use_v to_o annexe_v unto_o her_o canon_n the_o curse_n anathema_n because_o thing_n decree_v by_o they_o be_v indeed_o or_o at_o the_o le●st_a thought_n to_o be_v the_o will_n &_o word_n of_o god_n and_o they_o have_v respect_n in_o the_o say_n of_o paul_n if_o any_o teach_v otherwise_o though_o he_o be_v a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v therefore_o counsel_n in_o this_o action_n be_v no_o more_o but_o instrument_n of_o god_n to_o accurse_v those_o who_o he_o first_o have_v accurse_v argum._n 12._o a_o act_n indifferent_a if_o i●_n be_v command_v be_v make_v necessary_a and_o the_o keep_n of_o it_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o virtue_n therefore_o every_o law_n bind_v conscience_n to_o a_o sin_n ans._n a_o act_n in_o itself_o indifferent_a being_n command_v by_o man_n law_n it_o be_v not_o make_v simple_o necessary_a for_o that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o god_n law_n do_v or_o can_v do_v but_o only_o in_o some_o part_n that_o be_v so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o say_a act_n or_o action_n tend_v to_o maintain_v and_o preserve_v the_o good_a end_n for_o which_o the_o law_n be_v make_v and_o though_o the_o action_n be_v in_o this_o regard_n necessary_a yet_o do_v it_o still_o remain_v indifferent_a as_o it_o be_v consider_v in_o itself_o out_o of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n so_o as_o if_o peace_n the_o common_a good_a and_o comely_a order_n may_v be_v maintain_v and_o all_o offence_n avoid_v by_o any_o other_o mean_n the_o act_n may_v be_v do_v or_o not_o do_v without_o sin_n before_o god_n for_o whereas_o god_n himself_o have_v give_v liberty_n and_o feedom_n in_o the_o use_n of_o thing_n indifferent_a the_o law_n of_o man_n do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o same_o but_o only_o moderate_a and_o order_v the_o overcommon_a use_n of_o it_o for_o the_o common_a good_a argum._n 13._o the_o fast_n of_o lent_n stand_v by_o a_o law_n and_o commandment_n of_o men●_n and_o this_o law_n bind_v conscience_n simple_o for_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v call_v it_o a_o tradition_n apostolical_a and_o make_v the_o keep_n of_o it_o to_o be_v necessary_a and_o the_o not_o keep_v of_o it_o a_o sin_n and_o punish_v the_o offender_n with_o excommunication_n ans._n it_o be_v plain_a to_o he_o that_o will_v not_o be_v obstinate_a that_o lend_v fast_o be_v not_o command_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o be_v free_o at_o man_n pleasure_n and_o in_o several_a church_n diverse_o both_o in_o regard_n of_o space_n of_o time_n as_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o diversity_n of_o meat_n ireneus_fw-la in_o his_o epistle_n to_o victor_n cite_v by_o eusebius_n say_v 19_o some_o have_v think_v that_o they_o must_v fast_v one_o day_n some_o two_o day_n some_o more_o some_o 40._o hour_n day_n and_o night_n which_o diversity_n of_o fast_v commend_v the_o unity_n of_o faith_n spiridion_n a_o good_a man_n do_v eat_v flesh_n in_o lent_n and_o cause_v his_o guest_n to_o do_v the_o same_o and_o this_o he_o do_v upon_o judgement_n because_o he_o be_v persuade_v out_o of_o god_n word_n that_o to_o the_o clean_a all_o thing_n be_v clean_o and_o eusebius_n record_n that_o montanus_n the_o heretic_n be_v the_o first_o that_o prescribe_v solemn_a and_o set_v law_n of_o fast_v and_o whereas_o this_o fast_n be_v call_v apostolical_a tradition_n it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n for_o it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n in_o former_a time_n to_o term_v rite_n and_o order_n ecclesiastical_a not_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n apostolical_a order_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o may_v commend_v they_o to_o the_o people_n as_o jerome_n testify_v 47._o every_o province_n say_v he_o may_v think_v the_o constitution_n of_o the_o ancestor_n to_o be_v apostolical_a law_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o sin_n not_o to_o fast_v in_o lent_n as_o augus●ine_n speak_v it_o be_v not_o by_o reason_n of_o any_o commandment_n bind_v conscience_n for_o augustine_n say_v plain_o that_o neither_o christ_n nor_o his_o apostle_n appoint_v any_o set_a time_n of_o fast_v and_o chrysostome_n that_o christ_n never_o command_v we_o to_o follow_v his_o fast_n but_o the_o true_a reason_n hereof_o be_v borrow_v from_o the_o end_n for_o the_o primitive_a church_n use_v not_o the_o popish_a fast_o which_o be_v to_o eat_v whitmeate_n alone_o but_o a_o abstinence_n from_o all_o meat_n use_v special_o to_o mortify_v the_o flesh_n and_o to_o prepare_v man_n before_o hand_n to_o a_o worthy_a receive_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o this_o good_a end_n be_v the_o offence_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v that_o ancient_a father_n teach_v a_o necessity_n of_o keep_v this_o fast_a even_o hierome_n who_o they_o allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n say_v the_o contrary_a for_o confute_v the_o error_n of_o montanus_n who_o have_v his_o set_a time_n of_o fast_o to_o be_v keep_v of_o necessity_n he_o say_v mo●_n we_o fast_o in_o lent_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n as_o in_o a_o time_n meet_v for_o we_o and_o we_o do_v it_o not_o as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o we_o to_o fast_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o year_n except_o pentecost_n but_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o do_v a_o thing_n of_o necessity_n &_o a_o other_o to_o offer_v a_o gift_n of_o free_a will_n last_o excommunication_n be_v for_o open_a contempt_n of_o this_o order_n take_v up_o in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v that_o man_n shall_v fast_v before_o easter_n for_o their_o further_a humiliation_n and_o preparation_n to_o
live_v here_o we_o be_v in_o the_o fight_n and_o as_o long_o as_o we_o be_v in_o the_o fight_n we_o have_v no_o certain_a victory_n v._o some_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o uncertentie_n of_o other_o man_n salvation_n which_o we_o grant_v the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr vocat_fw-la gent._n 1._o clast_n say_v we_o can_v pronounce_v of_o no_o man_n before_o his_o end_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o elect_a august_n lib._n de_fw-fr persevere_v cap._n 13._o man_n be_v not_o with_o any_o certain_a asseveration_n to_o avouch_v that_o other_o belong_v to_o this_o call_n vi_o some_o speak_v of_o that_o certainty_n which_o come_v by_o revelation_n without_o the_o word_n greg._n lib._n 6._o epist_n 22._o to_o gregoria_n whereas_o you_o add_v in_o your_o epistle_n that_o you_o will_v be_v earnest_a with_o i_o till_o i_o write_v that_o it_o have_v be_v make_v know_v unto_o i_o that_o your_o sin_n be_v forgive_v you_o have_v require_v a_o hard_a and_o unprofitable_a thing_n hard_o because_o i_o be_o unworthy_a to_o who_o a_o relevation_n shall_v be_v make_v unprofitable_a because_o you_o must_v not_o be_v make_v sure_o touch_v your_o sin_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o the_o last_o day_n of_o your_o life_n for_o than_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o bewail_v the_o same_o sin_n vii_o some_o place_n deny_v unto_o man_n that_o certainty_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n which_o be_v to_o discern_v in_o himself_o all_o thing_n to_o come_v plain_o as_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v without_o help_n of_o testimony_n and_o outward_a sign_n bernard_n ●erm_n 1._o the_o septuage_n who_o can_v say_v i_o be_o of_o the_o elect_n i_o be_o of_o the_o predestinate_a to_o life_n certain_o we_o have_v none_o as_o yet_o but_o the_o affiance_n of_o our_o hope_n comfort_v us._n confer_v these_o word_n with_o those_o that_o follow_v for_o this_o cause_n certain_a sign_n and_o manifest_a token_n of_o salvation_n be_v give_v that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o thing_n out_o of_o doubt_n that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o elect_a in_o who_o these_o sign_n be_v thus_o i_o have_v in_o some_o part_n make_v manifest_a that_o a_o unfallible_a certainty_n of_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o life_n everlasting_a be_v the_o property_n of_o every_o renew_a conscience_n now_o therefore_o i_o will_v proceed_v further_a to_o consider_v how_o this_o certainty_n be_v cause_v and_o imprint_v in_o the_o conscience_n the_o principal_a agent_n and_o beginner_n thereof_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n enlighten_v the_o mind_n and_o conscience_n with_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a light_n and_o the_o instrument_n in_o this_o action_n be_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n whereby_o the_o word_n of_o life_n be_v apply_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o the_o person_n of_o every_o hearer_n and_o this_o certainty_n be_v by_o little_a and_o little_o conceive_v in_o a_o form_n of_o reason_v or_o practical_a syllogism_n frame_v in_o the_o mind_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n on_o this_o manner_n every_o one_o that_o believe_v be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n but_o i_o do_v believe_v therefore_o i_o be_o the_o child_n of_o god_n the_o proposition_n be_v make_v by_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o public_a congregation_n and_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o promise_n of_o eternal_a life_n apply_v to_o the_o particular_a hearer_n the_o second_o part_n or_o the_o assumption_n be_v the_o voice_n of_o conscience_n regenerate_v or_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o the_o same_o now_o papist_n write_v and_o avouch_v that_o the_o assumption_n be_v false_a but_o the_o reason_n which_o they_o use_v to_o prove_v the_o same_o be_v of_o small_a moment_n first_o they_o allege_v that_o many_o be_v deceive_v in_o their_o persuasion_n think_v they_o have_v that_o which_o they_o have_v not_o i_o answer_v again_o that_o many_o do_v false_o presume_v of_o god_n mercy_n and_o imagine_v they_o have_v that_o faith_n which_o they_o have_v not_o and_o in_o all_o such_o the_o assumption_n be_v false_a yet_o in_o all_o they_o that_o be_v choose_v to_o salvation_n and_o true_o call_v it_o be_v unfallible_o true_a for_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o true_a faith_n have_v also_o another_o gift_n of_o discern_v whereby_o they_o see_v and_o know_v their_o own_o faith_n it_o be_v further_a object_v that_o jeremie_n say_v 17.9_o the_o heart_n be_v deceitful_a and_o wicked_a above_o all_o thing_n who_o can_v know_v it_o but_o the_o intent_n of_o this_o place_n be_v only_o to_o show_v that_o no_o man_n can_v search_v his_o heart_n to_o the_o very_a bottom_n to_o see_v all_o and_o every_o want_n infirmity_n and_o wicked_a inclination_n that_o be_v therein_o for_o original_a sin_n wherewith_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v taint_v be_v a_o pronne_n or_o disposition_n to_o all_o the_o sin_n that_o be_v or_o may_v be_v and_o though_o man_n can_v not_o discern_v all_o their_o sin_n yet_o many_o of_o they_o be_v certain_o known●●_n why_o may_v not_o then_o many_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v certain_o know_v especial_o those_o which_o be_v of_o the_o principal_a as_o faith_n sanctification_n repentance_n again_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o peter_n believe_v that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o christ_n sake_n and_o yet_o indeed_o be_v not_o as_o the_o event_n declare_v for_o when_o the_o time_n come_v he_o deny_v christ._n ans._n peter_n at_o that_o time_n be_v but_o weak_a in_o faith_n and_o he_o be_v much_o carry_v away_o with_o a_o confidence_n of_o his_o own_o strength_n which_o make_v he_o speak_v those_o word_n of_o presumption_n and_o though_o he_o fail_v in_o this_o one_o particular_a action_n yet_o fail_v he_o not_o in_o the_o principal_a that_o be_v in_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o own_o sin_n and_o of_o life_n everlasting_a in_o a_o word_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o many_o persuade_v themselves_o of_o god_n mercy_n and_o yet_o be_v deceive_v nevertheless_o all_o such_o as_o do_v true_o believe_v be_v not_o deceive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v they_o to_o see_v that_o in_o themselves_o which_o by_o nature_n they_o can_v discern_v as_o paul_n signify_v when_o he_o say_v i_o speak_v the_o truth_n i_o lie_v not_o my_o conscience_n bear_v i_o witness_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n rom._n 9.1_o again_o the_o same_o testimony_n be_v give_v otherwise_o thus_o every_o child_n of_o god_n have_v the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n say_v god_n word_n but_o i_o be_o god_n child_n and_o therefore_o have_v the_o pardon_n of_o my_o sin_n say_v the_o renew_a conscience_n by_o the_o direction_n of_o god_n spirit_n rom._n 8.16_o gal._n 4.6_o after_o that_o this_o testimony_n be_v once_o begin_v it_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o same_o mean_n as_o also_o by_o prayer_n and_o the_o sacrament_n but_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v how_o a_o bodily_a element_n as_o bread_n wine_n water_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o confirm_v a_o persuasion_n of_o our_o adoption_n that_o be_v in_o the_o conscience_n answ._n the_o element_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o outward_a seal_n or_o instrument_n to_o confirm_v faith_n not_o as_o a_o medicine_n restore_v and_o confirm_v health_n whether_o we_o think_v on_o it_o or_o not_o whether_o we_o sleep_v or_o wake_v and_o that_o by_o his_o own_o inherent_a virtue_n but_o by_o reason_v in_o a_o syllogism_n make_v by_o the_o good_a conscience_n that_o reason_n medium_n thereof_o be_v the_o outward_a sign_n in_o the_o sacrament_n by_o mean_n of_o which_o syllogism_n the_o holy_a ghost_n move_v and_o stir_v the_o mind_n yea_o cherish_v and_o increase_v faith_n on_o this_o manner_n he_o which_o use_v the_o element_n aright_o shall_v receive_v the_o promise_n but_o i_o do_v or_o i_o have_v use_v the_o element_n aright_o therefore_o i_o shall_v receive_v the_o promise_n whereas_o presumption_n and_o the_o illusion_n of_o satan_n use_v as_o well_o to_o tell_v a_o man_n that_o he_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n as_o the_o true_a testimony_n of_o regenerate_a conscience_n the_o way_n to_o put_v difference_n between_o they_o be_v this_o i._o presumption_n be_v natural_a and_o from_o the_o very_a womb_n but_o this_o testimony_n of_o conscience_n be_v supernatural_a ii_o presumption_n be_v in_o they_o that_o make_v no_o account_n of_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n this_o testimony_n come_v by_o the_o reverend_a and_o careful_a hear_n of_o god_n word_n iii_o presumption_n be_v in_o they_o that_o use_v not_o to_o call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o god_n but_o this_o testimony_n of_o conscience_n be_v join_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n iv._o presumption_n be_v join_v with_o looseness_n of_o life_n this_o testimony_n bring_v with_o it_o always_o a_o happy_a change_n
power_n but_o god_n work_v to_o will_n in_o us._n for_o look_v at_o what_o time_n god_n give_v grace_n at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o recipere_fw-la give_v a_o will_n to_o desire_v and_o will_v the_o same_o grace_n as_o for_o example_n when_o god_n work_v faith_n at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o work_v also_o upon_o the_o will_n cause_v it_o to_o desire_v faith_n and_o willing_o to_o receive_v the_o gift_n of_o believe_v god_n make_v of_o the_o unwilling_a will_v a_o willing_a will_n because_o no_o man_n can_v receive_v grace_n utter_o against_o his_o will_n consider_v will_n constrain_v be_v no_o will_n but_o here_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o howsoever_o in_o respect_n of_o time_n the_o work_n of_o grace_n by_o god_n spirit_n and_o the_o willing_a of_o it_o in_o man_n go_v together_o yet_o in_o regard_n of_o order_n grace_n be_v first_o wrought_v and_o man_n will_n must_v first_o of_o all_o be_v act_v and_o move_v by_o grace_n and_o then_o it_o also_o act_v will_v and_o move_v itself_o and_o this_o be_v the_o last_o point_n of_o consent_n between_o we_o and_o the_o roman_a church_n touch_v freewill_n neither_o may_v we_o proceed_v further_o with_o they_o ii_o the_o dissent_n or_o difference_n the_o point_n of_o difference_n stand_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o freedom_n of_o man_n will_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n which_o concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n the_o papist_n say_v man_n will_n concur_v and_o work_v with_o god_n grace_n in_o the_o first_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n by_o itself_o and_o by_o it_o own_o natural_a power_n and_o be_v only_o help_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o say_v that_o man_n will_n work_v with_o grace_n in_o the_o first_o conversion_n yet_o not_o of_o itself_o but_o by_o grace_n or_o thus_o they_o say_v will_v have_v a_o natural_a cooperation_n we_o deny_v it_o and_o say_v it_o have_v cooperation_n only_o by_o grace_n be_v in_o itself_o not_o active_a but_o passive_a willing_a well_o only_o as_o it_o be_v move_v by_o grace_n whereby_o it_o must_v first_o be_v act_v and_o move_v before_o it_o can_v act_v or_o will_n and_o that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o conceive_v the_o difference_n i_o will_v use_v this_o comparison_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n set_v forth_o the_o estate_n of_o a_o sinner_n by_o the_o condition_n of_o a_o prisoner_n and_o so_o do_v we_o mark_v then_o the_o difference_n it_o suppose_v the_o say_a prisoner_n to_o lie_v bind_v hand_n and_o foot_n with_o chain_n and_o fetter_n and_o withal_o to_o be_v sick_a and_o weak_a yet_o not_o whole_o dead_a but_o live_v in_o part_n it_o suppose_v also_o that_o be_v in_o this_o case_n he_o stir_v not_o himself_o for_o any_o help_n and_o yet_o have_v ability_n and_o power_n to_o stir_v hereupon_o if_o the_o keeper_n come_v and_o take_v away_o his_o bolt_n and_o fetter_n and_o hold_v he_o by_o the_o hand_n &_o help_v he_o up_o he_o can_v and_o will_v of_o himself_o stand_v &_o walk_v and_o go_v out_o of_o prison_n even_o so_o say_v they_o be_v a_o sinner_n bind_v hand_n and_o foot_n with_o the_o chain_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o dead_a but_o sick_a like_a to_o the_o wound_a man_n in_o the_o way_n between_o jerico_fw-la and_o jerusalem_n and_o therefore_o do_v he_o not_o will_n and_o affect_v that_o which_o be_v good_a but_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v and_o do_v but_o untie_v his_o band_n and_o reach_v he_o his_o hand_n of_o grace_n then_o can_v he_o stand_v of_o himself_o and_o will_v his_o own_o salvation_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o that_o be_v good_a we_o in_o like_a manner_n grant_v that_o a_o prisoner_n fit_o resemble_v a_o natural_a man_n but_o yet_o such_o a_o prisoner_n must_v he_o be_v as_o be_v not_o only_o sick_a and_o weak_a but_o even_o stark_o dead_a which_o can_v not_o stir_v though_o the_o keeper_n untie_v his_o bolt_n and_o chain_n not_o hear_v though_o he_o sound_v a_o trumpet_n in_o his_o ear_n and_o if_o the_o say_a keeper_n will_v have_v he_o to_o move_v and_o stir_v he_o must_v give_v he_o not_o only_o his_o hand_n to_o help_v he_o but_o even_o soul_n and_o life_n also_o and_o such_o a_o one_o be_v every_o man_n by_o nature_n not_o only_o chain_v &_o fetter_v in_o his_o sin_n but_o stark_o dead_a therein_o as_o one_o that_o lie_v rot_v in_o the_o grave_n not_o have_v any_o ability_n or_o power_n to_o move_v or_o stir_v and_o therefore_o he_o can_v so_o much_o as_o desire_v or_o do_v anything_o that_o be_v true_o good_a of_o himself_o but_o god_n must_v first_o come_v and_o put_v a_o new_a soul_n into_o he_o even_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n to_o quicken_v and_o revive_v he_o and_o then_o be_v thus_o reviue_v the_o will_n begin_v to_o will_n good_a thing_n at_o the_o very_a same_o time_n when_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n first_o infuse_v grace_n and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a difference_n between_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o point_n of_o freewill_n iii_o our_o reason_n now_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n we_o hold_v namely_o that_o a_o man_n will_v not_o his_o own_o conversion_n of_o himself_o by_o nature_n either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n but_o by_o grace_n whole_o and_o alone_o these_o reason_n may_v be_v use_v the_o first_o be_v take_v from_o the_o nature_n and_o measure_n of_o man_n corruption_n which_o may_v be_v distinguish_v into_o two_o part_n the_o first_o be_v the_o want_n of_o that_o original_a righteousness_n which_o be_v in_o man_n by_o creation_n the_o second_o be_v a_o pronenes_n and_o inclination_n to_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a and_o to_o nothing_o that_o be_v true_o good_a this_o appear_v gen._n 8.21_o the_o frame_n of_o man_n heart_n say_v the_o lord_n be_v evil_a from_o his_o childhood_n that_o be_v the_o disposition_n of_o the_o understanding_n will_n affection_n with_o all_o that_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n devise_v form_v or_o imagine_v be_v whole_o evil_a and_o paul_n say_v rom._n 8.7_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v enmity_n against_o god_n which_o word_n be_v very_o significant_a for_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d translate_v wisdom_n signify_v that_o the_o best_a thought_n the_o best_a desire_n affection_n and_o endeavour_v that_o be_v in_o any_o natural_a man_n even_o those_o that_o come_v most_o near_o to_o true_a holiness_n be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o god_n but_o even_o enmity_n itself_o and_o hence_o i_o gather_v that_o the_o very_a heart_n itself_o that_o be_v the_o will_n and_o mind_n from_o whence_o these_o desire_n and_o thought_n do_v come_v be_v also_o enmity_n unto_o god_n for_o such_o as_o the_o action_n be_v such_o be_v the_o faculty_n whence_o it_o proceed_v such_o as_o the_o fruit_n be_v such_o be_v the_o tree_n such_o as_o the_o branch_n be_v such_o be_v the_o root_n by_o both_o these_o place_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o in_o man_n there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o want_n absence_n or_o deprivation_n of_o original_a righteousness_n but_o a_o proneness_n also_o by_o nature_n unto_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a which_o proneness_n include_v in_o it_o a_o inclination_n not_o to_o some_o few_o but_o to_o all_o and_o every_o sin_n the_o very_a sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o except_v hence_o therefore_o i_o reason_n thus_o if_o every_o man_n by_o nature_n do_v both_o want_n original_a justice_n and_o be_v also_o prone_a unto_o all_o evil_a then_o want_v he_o natural_a freewill_n to_o will_n that_o which_o be_v true_o good_a but_o every_o man_n by_o nature_n want_v original_a justice_n and_o be_v also_o prone_a unto_o all_o evil_a ergo_fw-la every_o man_n natural_o want_v freewill_n to_o will_v that_o which_o be_v good_a reason_n ii_o 1._o cor._n 2._o 14._o the_o natural_a man_n perceive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n unto_o he_o neither_o can_v know_v they_o because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v in_o these_o word_n saint_n paul_n set_v down_o these_o point_n i._o that_o a_o natural_a man_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o think_v of_o the_o thing_n reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n ii_o that_o a_o man_n hear_v and_o in_o mind_n conceive_v they_o can_v not_o give_v consent_n unto_o they_o and_o by_o natural_a judgement_n approve_v of_o they_o but_o contrariwise_o think_v they_o to_o be_v foolishness_n iii_o that_o no_o man_n can_v give_v assent_n to_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n unless_o he_o be_v enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o hence_o i_o reason_v thus_o if_o a_o man_n by_o nature_n do_v not_o know_v and_o perceive_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n and_o when_o he_o shall_v know_v they_o can_v not_o by_o nature_n give_v assent_n unto_o they_o then_o have_v he_o no_o power_n to_o will_v
we_o our_o debt_n and_o to_o it_o we_o say_v amen_o that_o be_v that_o our_o petition_n shall_v without_o doubt_n be_v grant_v unto_o us._n aug._n serm_n de_fw-fr temp._n 182._o and_o here_o note_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n cut_v off_o the_o principal_a part_n and_o property_n thereof_o for_o in_o justify_v faith_n two_o thing_n be_v require_v first_o knowledge_n reveal_v in_o the_o word_n touch_v the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n second_o a_o apply_v of_o thing_n know_v unto_o ourselves_o which_o some_o call_v affiance_n now_o the_o first_o they_o acknowledge_v but_o the_o second_o which_o be_v the_o very_a substance_n and_o principal_a part_n thereof_o they_o deny_v iii_o reason_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n 7._o august_n i_o demand_n now_o do_v thou_o believe_v in_o christ_n o_o sinner_n thou_o say_v i_o believe_v what_o believe_v thou_o that_o all_o thy_o sin_n may_v free_o be_v pardon_v in_o he_o thou_o have_v that_o which_o thou_o believe_v annunc_fw-la bernard_n the_o apostle_n think_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v free_o by_o faith_n if_o thou_o believe_v that_o thy_o sin_n can_v be_v remit_v but_o by_o he_o alone_o against_o who_o they_o be_v commit_v but_o go_v further_o and_o believe_v this_o too_o that_o by_o he_o thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o this_o be_v the_o testimony_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v in_o the_o heart_n say_v thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o cyprian_a natal_n god_n promise_v thou_o immortality_n when_o thou_o go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n and_o do_v thou_o doubt_v this_o be_v indeed_o not_o to_o know_v god_n and_o this_o be_v for_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o house_n of_o faith_n not_o to_o have_v faith_n if_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n let_v we_o believe_v his_o word_n and_o promise_n and_o we_o shall_v never_o die_v and_o shall_v come_v to_o christ_n with_o joyful_a security_n with_o he_o to_o reign_v for_o ever_o the_o ii_o difference_n touch_v faith_n in_o the_o act_n of_o justification_n be_v this_o the_o papist_n say_v we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n because_o it_o dispose_v a_o sinner_n to_o his_o justification_n after_o this_o manner_n by_o faith_n say_v he_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n be_v enlighten_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n knowledge_n stir_v up_o a_o fear_n of_o hell_n with_o a_o consideration_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o happiness_n as_o also_o the_o love_n &_o fear_v of_o god_n &_o hope_v of_o life_n eternal_a now_o when_o the_o heart_n be_v thus_o prepare_v god_n infuse_v the_o habit_n of_o charity_n &_o other_o virtue_n whereby_o a_o sinner_n be_v justify_v before_o god_n we_o say_v otherwise_o that_o faith_n justify_v because_o it_o be_v a_o supernatural_a instrument_n create_v by_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n at_o his_o conversion_n whereby_o he_o apprehend_v and_o receive_v christ_n righteousness_n for_o his_o justification_n in_o this_o their_o doctrine_n be_v a_o twofold_a error_n i._o that_o they_o make_v faith_n which_o justify_v to_o go_v before_o justification_n itself_o both_o ●or_a order_n of_o nature_n as_o also_o for_o time_n whereas_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n at_o the_o very_a instant_n when_o any_o man_n believe_v first_o he_o be_v then_o justify_v and_o sanctify_v for_o he_o that_o believe_v eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v already_o pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n joh._n 6.54_o the_o second_o be_v that_o faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o with_o they_o but_o a_o illumination_n of_o the_o mind_n stir_v up_o the_o will_n which_o be_v move_v &_o help_v cause_v in_o the_o heart_n many_o spiritual_a motion_n and_o thereby_o dispose_v man_n to_o his_o future_a justification_n but_o this_o indeed_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o dead_a man_n only_o help_v can_v prepare_v themselves_o to_o their_o future_a resurrection_n for_o we_o be_v all_o by_o nature_n dead_a in_o sin_n and_o therefore_o must_v not_o only_o be_v enlighten_v in_o mind_n but_o also_o renew_v in_o will_n before_o we_o can_v so_o much_o as_o will_v or_o desire_v that_o which_o be_v good_a now_o we_o as_o i_o have_v say_v teach_v otherwise_o that_o faith_n justify_v as_o it_o be_v a_o instrument_n to_o apprehend_v and_o apply_v christ_n with_o his_o obedience_n which_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o our_o justification_n this_o be_v the_o truth_n i_o prove_v it_o thus_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n two_o thing_n must_v be_v consider_v the_o substance_n thereof_o and_o the_o condition_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v that_o righteousness_n and_o life_n everlasting_a be_v give_v to_o god_n church_n and_o people_n by_o christ._n the_o condition_n be_v that_o we_o for_o our_o part_n be_v by_o faith_n to_o receive_v the_o foresay_a benefit_n and_o this_o condition_n be_v by_o grace_n as_o well_o as_o the_o substance_n now_o then_o that_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o salvation_n by_o christ_n he_o must_v be_v give_v unto_o we_o real_o as_o he_o be_v propound_v in_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o foresay_a covenant_n and_o for_o the_o give_v of_o christ_n god_n have_v appoint_v special_a ordinance_n as_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o administration_n o●●●e_v sacrament_n the_o word_n preach_v be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o communicate_v christ_n with_o all_o his_o benefit_n to_o they_o that_o come_v to_o be_v partaker_n thereof_o as_o be_v most_o plain_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o which_o the_o give_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o the_o several_a communicant_n be_v a_o pledge_n and_o sign_n of_o god_n particular_a give_v of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n with_o all_o his_o merit_n unto_o they_o and_o this_o give_v on_o god_n part_n can_v be_v effectual_a without_o receive_v on_o our_o part_n and_o therefore_o faith_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o instrument_n or_o hand_n to_o receive_v that_o which_o god_n give_v that_o we_o may_v find_v comfort_n by_o this_o give_n the_o iii_o difference_n concern_v faith_n be_v this_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n yet_o not_o by_o faith_n alone_o but_o also_o by_o other_o virtue_n as_o hope_v love_n the_o fear_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n the_o reason_n which_o be_v bring_v to_o maintain_v their_o opinion_n be_v of_o no_o moment_n i._o reason_n luke_n 7.47_o many_o sin_n be_v forgive_v she_o rationalis_fw-la because_o she_o love_v much_o whence_o they_o gather_v that_o the_o woman_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v justify_v and_o have_v the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n by_o love_n ans._n in_o this_o text_n love_n be_v not_o make_v a_o impulsive_a cause_n to_o move_v god_n to_o pardon_v her_o sin_n but_o only_o a_o figne_n to_o show_v and_o manifest_v that_o god_n have_v already_o pardon_v they_o like_o to_o this_o be_v the_o place_n of_o john_n who_o say_v 1._o joh._n 3._o 14._o we_o be_v translate_v from_o death_n to_o life_n because_o we_o love_v the_o brethren_n where_o love_n be_v no_o cause_n of_o the_o change_n but_o a_o sign_n &_o consequent_a thereof_o ii_o reason_n gal._n 5.6_o neither_o circumcision_n nor_o uncircumeision_n avail_v any_o thing_n but_o faith_n that_o work_v by_o love_n hence_o they_o gather_v that_o faith_n do_v justify_v together_o with_o love_n ans._n the_o property_n of_o true_a faith_n be_v to_o apprehend_v and_o receive_v something_o unto_o itself_o and_o love_n that_o go_v always_o with_o faith_n as_o a_o fruit_n and_o a_o unseparable_a companion_n thereof_o be_v of_o another_o nature_n for_o it_o do_v not_o receive_v in_o but_o as_o it_o be_v give_v out_o itself_o in_o all_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o first_o and_o second_o table_n towards_o god_n and_o man_n and_o this_o thing_n faith_n by_o itself_o can_v do_v and_o therefore_o paul_n say_v that_o faith_n work_v by_o love_n the_o hand_n have_v a_o property_n to_o reach_v out_o itself_o to_o lay_v hold_n of_o any_o thing_n and_o to_o rec●●ue_v a_o gift_n but_o the_o hand_n have_v no_o property_n to_o cut_v a_o piece_n of_o wood_n of_o itself_o without_o saw_n or_o knife_n or_o some_o like_a instrument_n &_o yet_o by_o help_n of_o they_o it_o can_v either_o divide_v or_o cut_v even_o so_o it_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o faith_n to_o go_v out_o of_o itself_o &_o to_o receive_v christ_n into_o the_o heart_n as_o for_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o first_o and_o second_o table_n faith_n can_v of_o itself_o bring_v they_o forth_o no_o more_o than_o the_o hand_n can_v divide_v or_o cut_v yet_o join_v love_n to_o faith_n &_o then_o can_v it_o practice_v duty_n commend_v concern_v god_n and_o man_n
and_o therefore_o will_v either_o exact_a a_o everlasting_a punishment_n or_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o same_o the_o dissent_n or_o difference_n the_o point_n of_o our_o difference_n and_o dissent_n be_v these_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v and_o believe_v that_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n have_v make_v a_o satisfaction_n for_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n and_o for_o the_o eternal_a punishment_n of_o they_o all_o yet_o so_o as_o they_o themselves_o must_v satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n of_o their_o offence_n either_o on_o earth_n or_o in_o purgatory_n we_o teach_v and_o believe_v that_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n have_v make_v a_o perfect_a and_o all_o sufficient_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n &_o for_o the_o whole_a punishment_n thereof_o both_o eternal_a and_o temporal_a thus_o we_o differ_v and_o herein_o we_o for_o our_o part_n must_v for_o ever_o stand_v at_o difference_n wi●h_v they_o so_o as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o more_o point_n of_o variance_n but_o this_o one_o it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o keep_v we_o always_o from_o unite_n our_o religion_n and_o cause_v we_o to_o obey_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n come_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n for_o as_o in_o the_o former_a point_n so_o in_o this_o also_o the_o papist_n err_v not_o in_o circumstance_n but_o in_o the_o very_a foundation_n and_o life_n of_o religion_n our_o reason_n i._o a_o satisfaction_n that_o be_v make_v imperfect_a either_o direct_o or_o by_o consequent_a be_v indeed_o no_o satisfaction_n at_o all_o but_o the_o papist_n make_v christ_n satisfaction_n imperfect_a in_o that_o they_o do_v add_v a_o supply_n by_o humane_a satisfaction_n &_o thus_o much_o a_o learned_a schoolman_n biel_n in_o plain_a word_n confess_v although_o say_v he_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o principal_a merit_n for_o which_o grace_n be_v confer_v the_o open_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o glory_n 5._o yet_o be_v it_o never_o the_o alone_a and_o total_a meritorious_a cause_n it_o be_v manifest_a because_o always_o with_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n there_o concur_v some_o work_n as_o the_o merit_n of_o congruity_n or_o condignity_n of_o he_o that_o receive_v grace_n or_o glory_n if_o he_o be_v of_o year_n and_o have_v the_o use_n of_o reason_n or_o of_o some_o other_o for_o he_o if_o he_o want_v reason_n for_o that_o which_o admit_v a_o supply_n by_o a_o other_o be_v imperfect_a in_o itself_o therefore_o humane_a satisfaction_n can_v not_o stand_v learned_a papist_n make_v answer_n that_o christ_n satisfaction_n and_o man_n may_v stand_v well_o together_o for_o say_v they_o christ_n satisfaction_n be_v sufficient_a in_o itself_o to_o answer_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o all_o sin_n and_o punishment_n but_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o this_o or_o that_o man_n till_o it_o be_v apply_v and_o it_o must_v be_v apply_v by_o our_o satisfaction_n make_v to_o god_n for_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n of_o our_o sin_n but_o i_o say_v again_o that_o man_n satisfaction_n can_v be_v no_o mean_n to_o apply_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n and_o i_o prove_v it_o thus_o the_o mean_n of_o apply_v god_n blessing_n and_o grace_n unto_o man_n be_v twofold_a some_o respect_n god_n himself_o and_o some_o respect_n man_n those_o which_o respect_n god_n be_v such_o whereby_o god_n on_o his_o part_n do_v offer_v and_o convey_v his_o mercy_n in_o christ_n unto_o man_n of_o this_o sort_n be_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o these_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o reach_v down_o and_o give_v unto_o we_o christ_n with_o all_o his_o benefit_n the_o other_o mean_n of_o apply_v on_o man_n part_n be_v those_o whereby_o the_o say_a benefit_n be_v receive_v of_o this_o sort_n there_o be_v only_o one_o namely_o faith_n whereby_o we_o believe_v that_o christ_n with_o all_o his_o benefit_n belong_v unto_o us._n and_o this_o be_v the_o hand_n of_o man_n whereby_o he_o receive_v christ_n as_o he_o be_v offer_v or_o exhibit_v by_o god_n in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n as_o for_o other_o mean_n beside_o these_o in_o scripture_n we_o find_v none_o foolish_a therefore_o be_v the_o answer_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o make_v man_n satisfaction_n mean_v to_o apply_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n unto_o we_o for_o by_o humane_a satisfaction_n christ_n be_v neither_o offer_v on_o god_n part_n nor_o yet_o receive_v on_o man_n pa●t_n let_v they_o prove_v it_o if_o they_o can_v other_o not_o content_a with_o this_o their_o former_a answer_n say_v that_o our_o satisfaction_n do_v nothing_o derogate_v from_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n because_o our_o work_n have_v their_o dignity_n and_o merit_n from_o christ_n satisfaction_n he_o merit_v that_o our_o work_n shall_v satisfy_v god_n justice_n for_o temporal_a punishment_n but_o this_o be_v also_o absurd_a and_o false_a as_o the_o former_a be_v for_o if_o christ_n do_v satisfy_v that_o man_n may_v satisfy_v than_o christ_n do_v make_v every_o believer_n to_o be_v a_o christ_n a_o jesus_n a_o redeemer_n and_o a_o priest_n in_o the_o same_o order_n with_o his_o own_o self_n but_o to_o make_v sinful_a man_n his_o own_o redeemer_n though_o it_o be_v but_o from_o temporal_a punishment_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v that_o the_o priesthood_n of_o christ_n be_v incommunicable_a and_o can_v not_o pass_v from_o he_o to_o any_o other_o 7.24_o now_o to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o sin_n or_o any_o part_n of_o the_o punishment_n thereof_o be_v a_o duty_n or_o a_o part_n of_o christ_n his_o priesthood_n and_o therefore_o to_o make_v satisfaction_n be_v a_o work_n that_o can_v not_o pass_v from_o his_o person_n to_o the_o person_n of_o any_o man_n again_o if_o christ_n by_o his_o satisfaction_n give_v power_n to_o man_n to_o satisfy_v than_o man_n do_v satisfy_v by_o christ_n and_o christ_n beside_o his_o own_o satisfaction_n upon_o the_o cross_n must_v daily_o satisfy_v in_o man_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o this_o can_v not_o be_v for_o christ_n upon_o the_o cross_n when_o death_n be_v upon_o he_o say_v it_o be_v finish_v that_o be_v i_o have_v full_o satisfy_v for_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o mankind_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o fault_n and_o punishment_n as_o for_o christ_n burial_n and_o resurrection_n which_o follow_v his_o death_n they_o serve_v not_o to_o satisfy_v but_o to_o confirm_v the_o same_o again_o paul_n say_v 2._o cor._n 5.12_o he_o that_o know_v no_o sin_n be_v make_v sin_n for_o we_o that_o be_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n for_o we_o but_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v true_a that_o christ_n do_v daily_o satisfy_v than_o paul_n speak_v too_o short_a and_o shall_v have_v say_v further_o that_o christ_n be_v make_v sin_n for_o we_o and_o in_o we_o too_o and_o that_o god_n be_v not_o only_o in_o christ_n but_o also_o in_o we_o reconcile_a the_o world_n to_o himself_o but_o paul_n never_o know_v this_o learning_n and_o therefore_o let_v they_o turn_v themselves_o which_o way_n they_o will_v by_o put_v a_o supplement_n to_o christ_n satisfaction_n they_o do_v indeed_o annihilate_v the_o same_o reason_n ii_o in_o sundry_a place_n of_o scripture_n especial_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v redeem_v justify_v and_o save_v free_o which_o word_n free_o do_v import_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v without_o any_o thing_n do_v on_o our_o part_n or_o by_o ourselves_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o if_o this_o be_v so_o then_o can_v we_o do_v nothing_o at_o all_o that_o may_v satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o the_o least_o punishment_n of_o our_o sin_n if_o we_o satisfy_v in_o our_o own_o person_n we_o be_v not_o save_v free_o and_o if_o we_o be_v save_v free_o we_o make_v no_o satisfaction_n at_o all_o reason_n iii_o we_o pray_v daily_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n now_o to_o plead_v pardon_n and_o to_o satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n be_v contrary_a and_o for_o all_o thing_n for_o which_o we_o can_v make_v satisfaction_n we_o need_v not_o crave_v a_o pardon_n but_o we_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o foresay_a petition_n whole_o and_o only_o to_o use_v the_o plea_n o●_n pardon_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o therefore_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o can_v not_o make_v any_o satisfaction_n at_o all_o reason_n iv._n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n tertul._n de_fw-fr baptism_n guiltiness_n be_v take_v away_o the_o punishment_n be_v also_o take_v away_o apost_n augustine_n christ_n by_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o punishment_n and_o not_o the_o fault_n have_v do_v away_o both_o fault_n and_o the_o punishment_n tom._n 10._o hom_n 5._o he_o
say_v that_o this_o commandment_n be_v speak_v as_o well_o of_o the_o unwritten_a as_o of_o the_o write_a word_n i_o answer_v that_o moses_n speak_v of_o the_o write_a word_n only_o for_o these_o very_a word_n be_v a_o certain_a preface_n which_o he_o set_v before_o a_o long_a commentary_n make_v of_o the_o write_a law_n for_o this_o end_n to_o make_v the_o people_n more_o attentive_a and_o obedient_a testimony_n ii_o isai_n 8.20_o to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n if_o they_o speak_v not_o according_a to_o this_o word_n it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n in_o they_o here_o the_o prophet_n teach_v what_o must_v be_v do_v in_o case_n of_o difficulty_n man_n must_v not_o run_v to_o the_o wizard_n or_o soothsayer_n but_o to_o the_o law_n and_o testimony_n and_o here_o he_o commend_v the_o write_a word_n as_o sufficient_a to_o resolve_v all_o doubt_n and_o scruple_n in_o conscience_n whatsoever_o testimony_n iii_o joh._n 20.31_o those_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n and_o in_o believe_v may_v have_v everlasting_a life_n here_o be_v set_v down_o the_o full_a end_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a write_a word_n which_o be_v to_o bring_v man_n to_o faith_n &_o consequent_o to_o salvation_n &_o therefore_o the_o whole_a scripture_n alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o this_o end_n without_o tradition_n if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o this_o place_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o christ_n miracle_n only_o i_o answer_v that_o miracle_n without_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n &_o knowledge_n of_o his_o suffering_n can_v bring_v no_o man_n to_o life_n everlasting_a and_o therefore_o the_o place_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o of_o his_o miracle_n alone_o as_o paul_n teach_v gal._n 1.8_o if_o we_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v unto_o you_o any_o thing_n beside_o that_o which_o we_o have_v preach_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v and_o to_o this_o effect_n he_o blame_v they_o that_o teach_v but_o a_o diverse_a doctrine_n to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v teach_v 1._o tim._n 1.3_o testimony_n iu_o 2._o tim._n 3.16,17_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o god_n and_o be_v profitable_a to_o teach_v to_o improove_v to_o correct_v and_o to_o instruct_v in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v absolute_a be_v make_v perfect_a unto_o every_o good_a work_n in_o these_o word_n be_v contain_v two_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n without_o unwritten_a verity_n the_o first_o that_o which_o be_v profitable_a to_o these_o four_o use_n namely_o to_o teach_v all_o necessary_a truth_n to_o confute_v all_o error_n to_o correct_v fault_n in_o manner_n and_o to_o instruct_v in_o righteousness_n that_o be_v to_o inform_v all_o man_n in_o all_o good_a duty_n that_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n but_o scripture_n serve_v for_o all_o these_o use_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v sufficient_a and_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v superfluous_a the_o second_o that_o which_o can_v make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n perfect_a in_o all_o the_o duty_n of_o their_o calling_n that_o same_o word_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v all_o other_o man_n perfect_a in_o all_o good_a work_n but_o god_n word_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a therefore_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prescribe_v the_o true_a and_o perfect_a way_n to_o eternal_a life_n without_o the_o help_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n v._o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n tertul._n say_v carnis_fw-la take_v from_o heretic_n the_o opinion_n which_o they_o maintain_v with_o the_o heathen_a that_o they_o may_v defend_v their_o question_n by_o scripture_n alone_o and_o they_o can_v stand_v again_o we_o need_v no_o curiosity_n after_o christ_n jesus_n nor_o inquisition_n after_o the_o gospel_n when_o we_o believe_v it_o we_o desire_v to_o believe_v nothing_o beside_o for_o this_o we_o first_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o which_o we_o may_v believe_v hierome_n on_o math._n 23._o writing_n of_o a_o opinion_n that_o john_n baptist_n be_v kill_v because_o he_o foretell_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n say_v thus_o this_o because_o it_o have_v not_o authority_n from_o scripture_n may_v as_o easy_o be_v contemn_v as_o approve_v in_o which_o word_n there_o be_v a_o conclusion_n with_o a_o minor_a and_o the_o mayor_n be_v to_o be_v supply_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o logic_n thus_o that_o which_o have_v not_o authority_n from_o scripture_n may_v as_o easy_o be_v contemn_v as_o approve_a but_o this_o opinion_n be_v for_o therefore_o behold_v a_o notable_a argument_n against_o all_o unwritten_a tradition_n augustine_n book_n 2._o cap._n 9_o the_o doct_n christ._n in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n be_v find_v all_o those_o point_n which_o contain_v faith_n and_o manner_n of_o live_v well_o vincentius_n lirinen_n say_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v perfect_a and_o full_o sufficient_a to_o itself_o for_o all_o thing_n beside_o these_o testimony_n other_o reason_n there_o be_v that_o serve_v to_o prove_v this_o point_n i._o the_o practice_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n who_o for_o the_o confirmamation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o teach_v use_v always_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v prove_v that_o they_o ever_o confirm_v any_o doctrine_n by_o tradition_n act._n 26.22_o i_o continue_v unto_o this_o day_n witness_v both_o to_o small_a and_o great_a say_v none_o other_o thing_n than_o those_o which_o the_o prophet_n and_o moses_n do_v say_v shall_v come_v and_o by_o this_o we_o be_v give_v to_o understand_v that_o we_o must_v always_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o write_a word_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o instruct_v we_o in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n ii_o if_o the_o believe_v of_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n than_o we_o must_v as_o well_o believe_v the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o well_o as_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n because_o apostolical_a tradition_n be_v not_o else_o where_o to_o be_v find_v but_o in_o their_o book_n and_o we_o may_v not_o believe_v their_o say_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o they_o often_o err_v be_v subject_n to_o error_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n their_o authority_n when_o they_o speak_v of_o tradition_n may_v be_v suspect_v and_o we_o may_v not_o always_o believe_v they_o upon_o their_o word_n objection_n for_o tradition_n first_o they_o allege_v 2._o thess._n 2.15_o where_o the_o apostle_n bid_v that_o church_n keep_v the_o ordinance_n which_o he_o teach_v they_o either_o by_o word_n or_o letter_n hence_o they_o gather_v that_o beside_o the_o write_a word_n there_o be_v unwritten_a tradition_n that_o be_v indeed_o necessary_a to_o be_v keep_v and_o obey_v ans._n it_o be_v very_o likely_a that_o this_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_n be_v the_o first_o that_o ever_o paul_n write_v to_o any_o church_n though_o in_o order_n it_o have_v not_o the_o first_o place_n and_o therefore_o at_o that_o time_n when_o this_o epistle_n be_v pen_v it_o may_v well_o fall_v out_o that_o some_o thing_n needful_a to_o salvation_n be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n not_o be_v as_o yet_o write_v by_o any_o apostle_n yet_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v afterward_o set_v down_o in_o writing_n either_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n or_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n object_n ii_o that_o scripture_n be_v scripture_n be_v a_o point_n to_o be_v believe_v but_o that_o be_v a_o tradition_n unwritten_a and_o therefore_o one_o tradition_n there_o be_v not_o write_v that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v ans._n that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v scripture_n it_o be_v to_o be_v gather_v and_o believe_v not_o upon_o bare_a tradition_n but_o from_o the_o very_a book_n themselves_o on_o this_o manner_n let_v a_o man_n that_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o discern_v read_v the_o several_a book_n withal_o let_v he_o consider_v the_o profess_a author_n thereof_o which_o be_v god_n himself_o and_o the_o matter_n therein_o contain_v which_o be_v a_o most_o divine_a and_o absolute_a truth_n full_a of_o piety_n the_o manner_n and_o form_n of_o speech_n which_o be_v full_a of_o majesty_n in_o the_o simplicity_n of_o word_n the_o end_n whereat_o they_o whole_o aim_v which_o be_v the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n alone_o etc._n etc._n &_o he_o shall_v be_v resolve_v that_o scripture_n be_v scripture_n even_o by_o the_o scripture_n itself_o yea_o and_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o may_v discern_v any_o part_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o write_n of_o man_n whatsoever_o thus_o they_o scripture_n prove_v itself_o to_o be_v scripture_n &_o yet_o
the_o encratitae_n be_v mindful_a be_v love_v child_n not_o to_o bring_v image_n into_o the_o church_n nor_o set_v they_o in_o the_o place_n where_o the_o saint_n be_v bury_v but_o always_o carry_v god_n in_o your_o heart_n neither_o let_v they_o be_v suffer_v in_o any_o common_a house_n for_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o a_o christian_n shall_v be_v occupy_v by_o the_o eye_n but_o by_o the_o meditation_n of_o the_o mind_n argument_n of_o the_o papist_n the_o reason_n which_o they_o use_v to_o defend_v their_o opinion_n be_v these_o i._o in_o salomon_n temple_n be_v erect_v cherubin_n which_o be_v image_n of_o angel_n on_o the_o mercieseat_n where_o god_n be_v worship_v and_o thereby_o be_v resemble_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n therefore_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o make_v image_n to_o resemble_v god_n answ._n they_o be_v erect_v by●_n special_a commandment_n from_o god_n who_o prescribe_v the_o very_a form_n of_o they_o and_o the_o place_n where_o they_o must_v be_v set_v and_o thereby_o moses_n have_v a_o warrant_n to_o make_v they_o otherwise_o he_o have_v sin_v let_v they_o show_v the_o like_a warrant_n for_o their_o image_n if_o they_o can_v second_o the_o cherubin_n be_v place_v in_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n in_o the_o most_o inward_a place_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o consequent_o be_v remove_v from_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o people_n who_o only_o hear_v of_o they_o and_o none_o but_o the_o high_a priest_n see_v they_o and_o that_o but_o once_o a_o year_n and_o the_o cherubin_n without_o the_o veil_n though_o they_o be_v to_o be_v see_v yet_o be_v they_o not_o to_o be_v worship_v exod._n 20.4_o therefore_o they_o serve_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o justify_v the_o image_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n object_n ii_o god_n appear_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n to_o abraham_n gen._n 18._o 1_o 13._o and_o to_o daniel_n who_o see_v the_o ancient_a of_o day_n sit_v on_o a_o throne_n dan._n 9_o now_o as_o god_n appear_v so_o may_v he_o be_v resemble_v therefore_o say_v they_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o resemble_v god_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n or_o any_o like_a image_n in_o which_o he_o show_v himself_o to_o man_n ans._n in_o this_o reason_n the_o proposition_n be_v false_a for_o god_n may_v appear_v in_o whatsoever_o form_n it_o please_v his_o majesty_n yet_o do_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o man_n shall_v therefore_o resemble_v god_n in_o those_o form_n man_n have_v no_o liberty_n to_o resemble_v he_o in_o any_o form_n at_o all_o unless_o he_o be_v command_v so_o to_o do_v again_o when_o god_n appear_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n that_o form_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o god_n presence_n only_o for_o the_o time_n when_o god_n appear_v and_o no_o long_o as_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v sign_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n not_o for_o ever_o but_o for_o the_o time_n of_o administration_n for_o afterward_o they_o become_v again_o as_o common_a bread_n and_o wine_n and_o when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appear_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o dove_n that_o likeness_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o his_o presence_n no_o long_o than_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o appear_v and_o therefore_o he_o that_o will_v in_o these_o form_n represent_v the_o trinity_n do_v great_o dishonour_n god_n and_o do_v that_o for_o which_o he_o have_v no_o warrant_n object_n iii_o man_n be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o paint_v a_o man_n and_o therefore_o to_o make_v the_o image_n of_o god_n ans._n a_o very_a cavil_n for_o first_o a_o man_n can_v be_v paint_v as_o he_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n which_o stand_v in_o the_o spiritual_a gift_n of_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n again_o the_o image_n of_o a_o man_n may_v be_v paint_v for_o civil_a or_o historical_a use_n but_o to_o paint_v any_o man_n for_o this_o end_n to_o represent_v god_n or_o in_o the_o way_n of_o religion_n that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o remember_v and_o worship_n god_n it_o be_v unlawful_a other_o reason_n which_o they_o use_v be_v of_o small_a moment_n and_o therefore_o i_o omit_v they_o ii_o differ_v they_o teach_v and_o maintain_v that_o image_n of_o god_n and_o of_o saint_n may_v be_v worship_v with_o religious_a worship_n special_o the_o crucifix_n for_o 3._o thomas_n of_o water_v say_v see_v the_o cross_n do_v represent_v christ_n who_o die_v upon_o a_o cross_n and_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o divine_a honour_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o cross_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v so_o too_o we_o on_o the_o contrary_a hold_v they_o may_v not_o our_o principal_a ground_n be_v the_o second_o commandment_n which_o contain_v two_o part_n the_o first_o forbid_v the_o make_n of_o image_n to_o resemble_v the_o true_a god_n the_o second_o forbid_v the_o worship_v of_o they_o or_o god_n in_o they_o in_o these_o word_n thou_o shall_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o they_o now_o there_o can_v be_v no_o worship_n do_v to_o any_o thing_n less_o than_o the_o bend_n of_o the_o knee_n again_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v a_o type_n or_o image_n of_o christ_n crucify_v joh._n 3.14_o appoint_a by_o god_n himself_o yet_o when_o the_o people_n burn_v incense_v to_o it_o 2._o king_n 18.4_o hezekias_n break_v it_o in_o piece_n and_o be_v therefore_o commend_v and_o when_o the_o devil_n bid_v our_o saviour_n christ_n but_o to_o bow_v down_o the_o knee_n unto_o he_o and_o he_o will_v give_v he_o the_o whole_a world_n christ_n reject_v his_o offer_n say_v thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v math._n 4._o 10._o again_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o one_o man_n to_o worship_v another_o with_o civil_a worship_n but_o to_o worship_v man_n with_o religious_a honour_n be_v unlawefull_a for_o all_o religious_a worship_n be_v prescribe_v in_o the_o first_o table_n and_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o man_n be_v only_o prescribe_v in_o the_o second_o table_n and_o the_o first_o commandment_n thereof_o honour_v thy_o father_n which_o honour_n be_v therefore_o civil_a and_o not_o religious_a now_o the_o mean_a man_n that_o can_v be_v be_v a_o more_o excellent_a image_n of_o god_n than_o all_o the_o image_n of_o god_n or_o of_o saint_n that_o be_v devise_v by_o man_n augustine_n and_o long_o after_o he_o gregory_n in_o plain_a term_n deny_v image_n to_o be_v adore_v the_o papist_n defend_v their_o opinion_n by_o these_o reason_n i._o psal._n 99.5_o cast_v down_o yourselves_o before_o his_o footstool_n ans._n the_o word_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v read_v bow_n at_o his_o footstool_n that_o be_v at_o the_o ark_n and_o mercyseat_n for_o there_o he_o have_v make_v a_o promise_n of_o his_o presence_n the_o word_n therefore_o say_v not_o bow_v to_o the_o ark_n but_o to_o god_n at_o the_o ark_n ii_o object_n exod._n 3.5_o god_n say_v to_o moses_n stand_v afar_o off_o and_o put_v off_o thy_o shoe_n for_o the_o place_n be_v holy_a now_o if_o holy_a place_n must_v be_v reverence_v then_o much_o more_o holy_a image_n as_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o such_o like_a ans._n god_n command_v the_o ceremony_n of_o put_v off_o the_o shoe_n that_o he_o may_v thereby_o strike_v moses_n with_o a_o religious_a reverence_n not_o of_o the_o place_n but_o of_o his_o own_o majesty_n who_o presence_n make_v the_o place_n holy_a let_v they_o show_v the_o like_a warrant_n for_o image_n iii_o object_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o kneel_v down_o to_o a_o chair_n of_o estate_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o king_n or_o queen_n therefore_o much_o more_o to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n &_o of_o saint_n in_o heaven_n glorify_v be_v absent_a from_o us._n answer_n to_o kneel_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o estate_n be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o civil_a testimony_n or_o sign_n of_o civil_a reverence_n by_o which_o all_o good_a subject_n when_o occasion_n be_v offer_v show_v their_o loyalty_n and_o subjection_n to_o their_o lawful_a prince_n and_o this_o kneeling_z be_v on_o this_o manner_n and_o to_o no_o other_o end_n have_v sufficient_a warrant_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o kneel_v to_o the_o image_n of_o any_o saint_n depart_v be_v religious_a and_o consequent_o more_o than_o civil_a worship_n as_o the_o papist_n themselves_o confess_v the_o argument_n than_o prove_v nothing_o unless_o they_o will_v keep_v themselves_o to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o worship_n iii_o differ_v the_o papist_n also_o teach_v that_o god_n may_v be_v lawful_o worship_v in_o image_n in_o which_o he_o have_v appear_v unto_o man_n as_o the_o father_n in_o the_o image_n of_o a_o old_a man_n the_o son_n in_o the_o image_n of_o a_o man_n crucify_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o dove_n etc._n etc._n but_o we_o hold_v it_o unlawefull_a to_o
but_o spiritual_a again_o in_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n every_o believer_n receive_v whole_a christ_n god_n and_o man_n though_o not_o the_o godhead_n now_o by_o this_o carnal_a eat_n we_o receive_v not_o whole_a christ_n but_o only_o a_o part_n of_o his_o manhood_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v no_o carnal_a eat_n and_o consequent_o no_o bodily_a presence_n reason_n vii_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n theodoret_n say_v immutab_n the_o same_o christ_n who_o call_v his_o natural_a body_n food_n and_o bread_n who_o also_o call_v himself_o a_o vine_n he_o vouchsafe_v the_o visible_a sign_n the_o name_n of_o his_o own_o body_n not_o change_v nature_n but_o put_v grace_n to_o nature_n whereby_o he_o mean_v consecration_n and_o dialog_n the_o mystical_a sign_n after_o sanctification_n lose_v not_o their_o proper_a nature_n for_o they_o remain_v in_o their_o first_o nature_n and_o keep_v their_o first_o figure_n and_o form_n and_o as_o before_o may_v be_v touch_v and_o see_v and_o that_o which_o they_o be_v make_v be_v understand_v believe_v adore_v gelasius_n say_v christ._n bread_n and_o wine_n pass_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n yet_o so_o as_o the_o substance_n or_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v not_o and_o they_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o divine_a substance_n yet_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v still_o in_o the_o property_n of_o their_o nature_n lombard_n say_v 11._o if_o it_o be_v ask_v what_o conversion_n this_o be_v whether_o formal_a or_o substantial_a or_o of_o a_o other_o kind_n i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o define_v and_o that_o the_o father_n hold_v not_o transubstantiation_n i_o prove_v it_o by_o sundry_a reason_n first_o they_o use_v in_o former_a time_n 2._o to_o burn_v with_o fire_n that_o which_o remain_v after_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n second_o by_o the_o sacramental_a union_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n with_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n they_o use_v to_o confirm_v the_o personal_a union_n of_o the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o godhead_n against_o heretic_n which_o argument_n they_o will_v not_o have_v use_v if_o they_o have_v believe_v a_o popish_a real_a presence_n three_o it_o be_v a_o custom_n in_o constantinople_n that_o if_o many_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n remain_v after_o the_o administration_n thereof_o be_v end_v that_o young_a child_n shall_v be_v send_v for_o from_o the_o school_n to_o eat_v they_o who_o nevertheless_o be_v bar_v the_o lord_n table_n 25._o and_o this_o argue_v plain_o that_o the_o church_n in_o those_o day_n take_v the_o bread_n after_o the_o administration_n be_v end_v for_o common_a bread_n again_o it_o be_v once_o a_o order_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o the_o wine_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v by_o dip_v into_o it_o bread_n which_o have_v be_v consecrate_v 26._o but_o this_o order_n can_v stand_v with_o the_o real_a presence_n in_o which_o the_o bread_n be_v turn_v both_o into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n nicholaus_fw-la cabasilas_n say_v after_o he_o have_v use_v some_o speech_n to_o the_o people_n he_o erect_v their_o mind_n and_o li_v their_o thought_n from_o earth_n and_o say_v sursum_fw-la corda_fw-la let_v we_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n let_v we_o think_v on_o thing_n above_o and_o not_o on_o thing_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n they_o consent_v &_o say_v that_o they_o lift_v up_o their_o heart_n thither_o where_o be_v their_o treasure_n and_o where_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n objection_n of_o papist_n i._o their_o first_o reason_n be_v joh._n 6.55_o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o therefore_o say_v they_o christ_n body_n must_v be_v eat_v with_o the_o mouth_n and_o his_o blood_n drink_v according_o ans._n the_o chapter_n must_v be●_n understand_v of_o a_o spiritual_a eat_n of_o christ_n his_o body_n be_v meat_n indeed_o but_o spiritual_a meat_n &_o his_o blood_n spiritual_a drink_n to_o be_v receive_v not_o by_o the_o mouth_n but_o by_o faith_n this_o be_v the_o very_a point_n that_o christ_n here_o intend_v to_o prove_v namely_o that_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o be_v to_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o to_o drink_v his_o blood_n be_v all_o one_o again_o this_o chapter_n must_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o that_o special_a eat_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o it_o be_v say_v general_o v_o 53._o except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o and_o if_o these_o very_a word_n which_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o chapter_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o a_o sacramental_a eat_n no_o man_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v save_v for_o none_o do_v bodily_a eat_v or_o drink_v his_o body_n or_o blood_n consider_v it_o be_v not_o then_o exist_v in_o nature_n but_o only_o be_v present_a to_o the_o believe_a heart_n by_o faith_n ii_o object_n an_o other_o argument_n be_v take_v from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n this_o be_v my_o body_n ans._n these_o word_n must_v not_o be_v understand_v proper_o but_o by_o a_o figure_n his_o body_n be_v put_v for_o the_o sign_n and_o seal_n of_o his_o body_n it_o be_v object_v that_o when_o any_o make_v their_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n they_o speak_v as_o plain_o as_o they_o can_v now_o in_o this_o supper_n christ_n ratify_v his_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n &_o therefore_o he_o speak_v plain_o without_o any_o figure_n ans._n christ_n here_o speak_v plain_o and_o by_o a_o figure_n also_o for_o it_o have_v be_v always_o the_o usual_a manner_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o give_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v to_o the_o sign_n as_o gen._n 17._o 10._o circumcision_n be_v call_v the_o covenant_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o next_o verse_n in_o the_o way_n of_o exposition_n the_o sign_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o exod._n 12._o 11._o the_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v call_v the_o angel_n pass_v by_o or_o over_o the_o house_n of_o the_o israelite_n whereas_o indeed_o it_o be_v but_o a_o sign_n thereof_o and_o 1._o cor._n 10.4_o the_o rock_n be_v christ._n 1._o cor._n 5.7_o the_o passover_o be_v christ._n and_o the_o like_a phrase_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n concern_v the_o cup_n which_o the_o papist_n themselves_o confess_v to_o be_v figurative_a when_o it_o be_v say_v luk._n 22._o this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n that_o be_v a_o sign_n seal_n and_o pledge_v thereof_o again_o the_o time_n when_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v must_v be_v consider_v and_o it_o be_v before_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n whereas_o yet_o his_o body_n be_v not_o crucify_v nor_o his_o blood_n shed_v and_o consequent_o neither_o of_o they_o can_v be_v receive_v in_o bodily_a manner_n but_o by_o faith_n alone_o again_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o the_o author_n but_o the_o minister_n of_o this_o sacrament_n at_o the_o time_n of_o institution_n thereof_o and_o if_o the_o bread_n have_v be_v true_o turn_v into_o his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n christ_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n shall_v have_v take_v his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o have_v give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n nay_o which_o be_v more_o he_o shall_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n have_v take_v his_o own_o flesh_n and_o drunken_a his_o own_o blood_n and_o have_v eat_v himself_o for_o christ_n himself_o do_v eat_v the_o bread_n and_o drink_v the_o wine_n that_o he_o may_v with_o his_o own_o person_n consecrate_v his_o last_o supper_n as_o he_o have_v consecrate_v baptism_n before_o and_o if_o these_o word_n shall_v be_v proper_o understand_v every_o man_n shall_v be_v a_o manslayer_n in_o his_o eat_n of_o christ._n last_o by_o mean_n of_o popish_a real_a presence_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o our_o body_n shall_v be_v nourish_v by_o naked_a quality_n without_o any_o substance_n which_o in_o all_o philosophy_n be_v false_a and_o erroneous_a to_o help_v this_o and_o the_o like_a absurdity_n some_o papist_n make_v nine_a wonder_n in_o the_o sacrament_n 14._o the_o first_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n in_o as_o large_a a_o quantity_n as_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o crosse●_n and_o be_v now_o in_o heaven_n &_o yet_o exclude_v not_o the_o quantity_n of_o the_o bread_n the_o second_o that_o there_o be_v accident_n without_o a_o subject_n the_o three_o that_o bread_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o yet_o be_v not_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o body_n nor_o resolve_v to_o nothing_o the_o four_o that_o the_o body_n increase_v not_o by_o consecration_n of_o many_o host_n and_o be_v not_o diminish_v by_o often_o
itself_o can_v make_v any_o man_n to_o merit_v but_o where_o may_v we_o find_v these_o work_n not_o in_o the_o person_n of_o any_o mere_a man_n or_o angel_n nor_o in_o all_o man_n and_o angel_n but_o only_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n god_n and_o man_n who_o work_n be_v not_o only_o answerable_a to_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o law_n but_o go_v far_o beyond_o the_o same_o for_o first_o the_o obedience_n of_o his_o life_n consider_v alone_o by_o itself_o be_v answerable_a even_o to_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n and_o therefore_o the_o suffering_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n be_v more_o than_o the_o law_n can_v require_v at_o his_o hand_n consider_v it_o require_v no_o punishment_n of_o he_o that_o be_v a_o doer_n of_o all_o thing_n contain_v therein_o second_o the_o very_a rigour_n of_o the_o law_n require_v obedience_n only_o of_o they_o that_o be_v mere_a man_n but_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o obedience_n of_o a_o person_n that_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n three_o the_o law_n require_v personal_a obedience_n that_o be_v that_o every_o man_n fulfil_v the_o law_n for_o himself_o and_o it_o speak_v of_o no_o more_o christ_n obey_v the_o law_n for_o himself_o not_o because_o he_o do_v by_o his_o obedience_n merit_v his_o own_o glory_n but_o because_o he_o be_v to_o be_v a_o perfect_a and_o pure_a high_a priest_n not_o only_o in_o nature_n but_o also_o in_o life_n and_o as_o he_o be_v a_o creature_n he_o be_v to_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o law_n now_o the_o obedience_n which_o christ_n perform_v be_v not_o for_o himself_o alone_o but_o it_o serve_v also_o for_o all_o the_o elect_a &_o consider_v it_o be_v the_o obedience_n of_o god_n as_o paul_n signify_v when_o he_o say_v feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o purchase_v with_o his_o blood_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o many_o thousand_o world_n &_o by_o reason_n the_o law_n require_v no_o obedience_n of_o he_o that_o be_v god_n this_o obedience_n therefore_o may_v true_o be_v term_v a_o work_n of_o supererrogation_n this_o one_o we_o acknowledge_v and_o beside_o this_o we_o dare_v acknowledge_v none_o and_o thus_o far_o we_o agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o perfection_n and_o further_o we_o dare_v not_o go_v the_o difference_n the_o papist_n hold_v as_o the_o write_n of_o the_o learned_a among_o they_o teach_v that_o a_o man_n be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n may_v not_o only_o keep_v all_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n and_o thereby_o deserve_v his_o own_o salvation_n but_o also_o go_v beyond_o the_o law_n and_o do_v work_n of_o supererrogation_n which_o the_o law_n require_v not_o as_o to_o perform_v the_o vow_n of_o single_a life_n and_o the_o vow_n of_o regular_a obedience_n etc._n etc._n and_o by_o this_o mean_n they_o say_v man_n deserve_v a_o great_a degree_n of_o glory_n then_o the_o law_n can_v afford_v of_o perfection_n they_o make_v two_o kind_n one_o they_o call_v necessary_a perfection_n which_o be_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n in_o every_o commandment_n whereby_o eternal_a life_n be_v deserve_v the_o second_o be_v profitable_a perfection_n when_o man_n do_v not_o only_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o law_n require_v but_o over_o and_o beside_o they_o make_v certain_a vow_n and_o perform_v certain_a other_o duty_n which_o the_o law_n enjoin_v not_o for_o the_o do_v whereof_o they_o shall_v be_v reward_v with_o a_o great_a measure_n of_o glory_n than_o the_o law_n design_v this_o they_o make_v plain_a by_o comparison_n two_o soldier_n fight_v in_o the_o field_n under_o one_o and_o the_o same_o captain_n the_o one_o only_o keep_v his_o stand_n and_o thereby_o deserve_v his_o pay_n the_o other_o in_o keep_v of_o his_o place_n do_v also_o win_v the_o enemy_n standard_n or_o do_v some_o other_o notable_a exploit_n now_o this_o man_n beside_o his_o pay_n deserve_v some_o great_a reward_n and_o thus_o say_v they_o it_o be_v with_o all_o true_a catholic_n in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n they_o that_o keep_v the_o law_n shall_v have_v life_n eternal_a but_o they_o that_o do_v more_o than_o the_o law_n as_o work_n of_o supererrogation_n shall_v be_v crown_v with_o great_a glory_n this_o be_v their_o doctrine_n but_o we_o on_o the_o contrary_n teach_v that_o albeit_o we_o be_v to_o strive_v to_o a_o perfection_n as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v yet_o no_o man_n can_v fulfil_v the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o this_o life_n much_o less_o do_v work_n of_o supererrogation_n for_o the_o confirmation_n whereof_o these_o reason_n may_v be_v use_v i._o in_o the_o moral_a law_n two_o thing_n be_v command_v first_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o man_n second_o the_o manner_n of_o this_o love_n now_o the_o manner_n of_o love_a god_n be_v to_o love_v he_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n and_o strength_n luk._n 10.27_o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o strength_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o thought_n etc._n etc._n as_o bernard_n say_v the_o measure_n of_o love_a god_n be_v to_o love_v he_o without_o measure_n and_o that_o be_v to_o love_v he_o with_o the_o great_a perfection_n of_o love_n that_o can_v befall_v a_o creature_n hence_o it_o follow_v that_o in_o love_a god_n no_o man_n can_v possible_o do_v more_o than_o the_o law_n require_v and_o therefore_o the_o performance_n of_o all_o vow_n whatsoever_o &_o all_o like_a duty_n come_v short_a of_o the_o intention_n or_o scope_n of_o the_o law_n two_o reason_n the_o compass_n of_o the_o law_n be_v large_a &_o comprehend_v in_o it_o more_o than_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n can_v at_o the_o first_o conceive_v for_o every_o commandment_n have_v two_o part_n the_o negative_a and_o the_o affirmative_a in_o the_o negative_a be_v forbid_v not_o only_o the_o capital_a sin_n name_v as_o murder_v theft_n adultery_n etc._n etc._n but_o all_o sin_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n with_o all_o occasion_n and_o provocation_n thereto_o and_o in_o the_o affirmative_a be_v command_v not_o only_o the_o contrary_a virtue_n as_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o love_n of_o our_o neighbour_n honour_n life_n chastity_n good_n good_a name_n but_o the_o use_n of_o all_o help_n and_o mean_n whereby_o the_o say_a virtue_n may_v be_v preserve_v further_v and_o practise_v thus_o have_v our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o expound_v the_o law_n math._n 5.6_o upon_o this_o plain_a ground_n i_o conclude_v that_o all_o duty_n pertain_v to_o life_n and_o manner_n come_v within_o the_o list_n of_o some_o moral_a commandment_n and_o that_o the_o papist_n make_v their_o work_n of_o supererrogation_n mean_v to_o further_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o man_n must_v needs_o bring_v they_o under_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o law_n under_o which_o if_o they_o be_v they_o can_v possible_o go_v beyond_o the_o same_o reason_n iii_o luk._n 17.10_o when_o you_o have_v do_v all_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v command_v we_o we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n we_o have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o do_v the_o papist_n answer_v that_o we_o be_v unprofitable_a to_o god_n but_o not_o to_o ourselves_o but_o this_o shift_n of_o they_o be_v beside_o the_o very_a intent_n of_o the_o place_n for_o a_o servant_n in_o do_v his_o duty_n be_v unprofitable_a even_o to_o himself_o and_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o deserve_v thanks_o at_o his_o master_n hand_n as_o christ_n say_v v_o 9●_n do_v he_o thank_v that_o servant_n second_o they_o answer_v that_o we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n in_o do_v thing_n command_v yet_o when_o we_o do_v thing_n prescribe_v in_o the_o way_n of_o counsel_n we_o may_v profit_v ourselves_o and_o merit_v thereby_o but_o this_o answer_n do_v not_o stand_v with_o reason_n for_o thing_n command_v in_o that_o they_o be_v command_v be_v more_o excellent_a than_o thing_n leave_v to_o our_o liberty_n because_o the_o will_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n give_v excellency_n and_o goodness_n unto_o they_o again_o counsel_n be_v think_v to_o be_v hard_a than_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n and_o if_o man_n can_v profit_v themselves_o by_o obedience_n of_o moral_a precept_n which_o be_v more_o easy_a much_o less_o shall_v they_o be_v able_a to_o profit_v themselves_o by_o counsel_n which_o be_v of_o great_a difficulty_n reason_n iv._n if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o ability_n and_o power_n of_o man_n to_o keep_v the_o law_n then_o much_o less_o be_v he_o able_a to_o do_v any_o work_n that_o be_v beyond_o and_o above_o all_o the_o law_n require_v but_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n and_o therefore_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o supererrogate_v here_o the_o papist_n deny_v the_o proposition_n for_o say_v they_o
call_v universal_a bishop_n the_o universal_a church_n go_v to_o decay_n and_o chap._n 144._o i_o say_v bold_o that_o whosoever_o call_v or_o desire_v to_o call_v himself_o universal_a priest_n in_o his_o pride_n be_v a_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n and_o 3._o behold_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o epistle_n which_o you_o direct_v unto_o i_o you_o cause_v to_o be_v set_v a_o proud_a title_n call_v i_o universal_a pope_n bernard_n consider_v that_o thou_o be_v not_o a_o lord_n of_o bishop_n but_o one_o of_o they_o church_n be_v maim_v in_o that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n draw_v all_o power_n to_o himself_o again_o gregory_n himself_o be_v pope_n say_v to_o the_o emperor_n i_o which_o be_o subject_v to_o your_o commandment_n have_v every_o way_n discharge_v that_o which_o be_v due_a in_o that_o i_o have_v perform_v my_o allegiance_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o have_v not_o conceal_v what_o i_o think_v on_o god_n behalf_n and_o pope_n leo_n the_o four_o after_o gregory_n 200._o year_n acknowledge_v the_o emperor_n lotharius_n for_o his_o sovereign_a prince_n 10._o and_o profess_a obedience_n without_o gainsay_v to_o his_o imperial_a commandment_n to_o conclude_v whereas_o they_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o donble_a head_n of_o the_o church_n one_o imperial_a which_o be_v christ_n alone_o the_o other_o ministerial_a which_o be_v the_o pope_n govern_v the_o whole_a church_n under_o christ_n i_o answer_v this_o distinction_n rob_v christ_n of_o his_o honour_n because_o in_o set_v up_o their_o ministerial_a head_n they_o be_v fain_o to_o borrow_v of_o christ_n thing_n proper_a unto_o he_o as_o the_o privilege_n to_o forgive_v sin_n priesthood_n proper_o and_o the_o power_n to_o govern_v the_o whole_a earth_n by_o make_v of_o law_n that_o shall_v as_o true_o bind_v conscience_n as_o the_o law_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n the_o 19_o point_n of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n our_o consent_n conclus_fw-la i._o we_o teach_v and_o believe_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v sign_n to_o represent_v christ_n with_o his_o benefit_n unto_o us._n conclus_fw-la ii_o we_o teach_v further_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v indeed_o instrument_n whereby_o god_n offer_v and_o give_v the_o foresay_a benefit_n unto_o us._n thus_o far_o we_o consent_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o difference_n the_o difference_n between_o we_o stand_v in_o sundry_a point_n first_o of_o all_o the_o best_a learned_a among_o they_o teach_v that_o sacrament_n be_v physical_a instrument_n that_o be_v true_a and_o proper_a instrumental_a cause_n have_v force_n and_o efficacy_n in_o they_o to_o produce_v and_o give_v grace_n ●1_n they_o use_v to_o express_v their_o meaning_n by_o these_o comparison_n when_o the_o scrivener_n take_v the_o pen_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o write_v the_o action_n of_o writing_n come_v from_o the_o pen_n move_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o writer_n and_o in_o cut_v of_o wood_n or_o stone_n the_o division_n come_v from_o the_o see_v move_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o workman_n even_o so_o the_o grace_n say_v they_o that_o be_v give_v by_o god_n be_v confer_v by_o the_o sacrament_n itself_o now_o we_o for_o our_o part_n hold_v that_o sacrament_n be_v not_o physical_a but_o mere_a voluntary_a instrument_n voluntary_a because_o it_o be_v the_o will_n and_o appointment_n of_o god_n to_o use_v they_o as_o certain_a outward_a mean_n of_o grace_n instrument_n because_o when_o we_o use_v they_o aright_o according_a to_o the_o institution_n god_n then_o answerable_o confer_v grace_n from_o himself_o in_o this_o respect_n only_o take_v we_o they_o for_o instrument_n and_o no_o otherwise_o the_o second_o difference_n be_v this_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o very_a action_n of_o the_o minister_v dispense_n the_o sacrament_n as_o it_o be_v a_o work_n do_v give_v grace_n immediate_o if_o the_o party_n be_v prepare_v as_o the_o very_a wash_n or_o sprinkle_v of_o water_n in_o baptism_n and_o the_o give_v of_o bread_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n even_o as_o the_o orderly_a move_n of_o the_o pen_n upon_o the_o paper_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o writer_n cause_v write_v we_o hold_v the_o contrary_a namely_o that_o no_o action_n in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o a_o sacrament_n confer_v grace_n as_o it_o be_v a_o work_n do_v that_o be_v by_o the_o efficacy_n and_o force_n of_o the_o very_a sacramental_a action_n itself_o though_o ordain_v of_o god_n but_o for_o two_o other_o way_n first_o by_o the_o signification_n thereof_o for_o god_n testify_v unto_o we_o his_o will_n and_o good_a pleasure_n partly_o by_o the_o word_n of_o promise_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o sacrament_n the_o sign_n represent_v to_o the_o eye_n that_o which_o the_o word_n do_v to_o the_o ear_n be_v also_o type_n and_o certain_a image_n of_o the_o very_a same_o thing_n that_o be_v promise_v in_o the_o word_n and_o no_o other_o yea_o the_o element_n be_v not_o general_a and_o confuse_a but_o particular_a sign_n to_o the_o several_a communicant_n and_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o institution_n for_o when_o the_o faithful_a receive_v the_o sign_n from_o god_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o minister_n it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o god_n himself_o with_o his_o own_o mouth_n shall_v speak_v unto_o they_o several_o and_o by_o name_n promise_n to_o they_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o thing_n say_v to_o man_n particular_o do_v more_o affect_v and_o more_o take_v away_o doubt_v then_o if_o they_o be_v general_o speak_v to_o a_o whole_a company_n therefore_o sign_n of_o grace_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o apply_v and_o bind_v of_o the_o promise_n of_o salvation_n to_o every_o particular_a believer_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n the_o often_o they_o be_v receive_v the_o more_o they_o help_v our_o infirmity_n and_o confirm_v our_o assurance_n of_o mercy_n again_o the_o sacrament_n confer_v grace_n in_o that_o the_o sign_n thereof_o confirm_v faith_n as_o a_o pledge_n by_o reason_n it_o have_v a_o promise_n annex_v to_o it_o for_o when_o god_n command_v we_o to_o receive_v the_o sign_n in_o faith_n and_o withal_o promise_v to_o the_o receiver_n to_o give_v the_o thing_n signify_v he_o bind_v himself_o as_o it_o be_v in_o bond_n unto_o we_o to_o stand_v to_o his_o own_o word_n even_o as_o man_n bind_v themselves_o in_o obligation_n put_v to_o their_o hand_n and_o seal_n so_o as_o they_o can_v go_v back_o and_o when_o the_o sign_n be_v thus_o use_v as_o pledge_n and_o that_o often_o they_o great_o increase_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o a_o token_n send_v from_o one_o friend_n to_o a_o other_o renew_v and_o confirm_v the_o persuasion_n of_o love_n these_o be_v the_o two_o principal_a way_n whereby_o the_o sacrament_n be_v say_v to_o confer_v grace_n namely_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o signification_n and_o as_o they_o be_v pledge_n of_o god_n favour_n unto_o us._n and_o the_o very_a point_n here_o to_o be_v consider_v be_v in_o what_o order_n and_o manner_n they_o confirm_v and_o the_o manner_n be_v this_o the_o sign_n and_o visible_a element_n affect_v the_o sense_n outward_a and_o inward_a the_o sense_n convey_v their_o object_n to_o the_o mind_n the_o mind_n direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n reason_v on_o this_o manner_n out_o of_o the_o promise_n annex_v to_o the_o sacrament_n he_o that_o use_v the_o element_n aright_o shall_v receive_v grace_n thereby_o but_o i_o use_v the_o element_n aright_o in_o faith_n and_o repentance_n say_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o believer_n therefore_o shall_v i_o receive_v from_o god_n increase_n of_o grace_n thus_o then_o faith_n be_v confirm_v not_o by_o the_o work_n do_v but_o by_o a_o kind_n of_o reason_v cause_v in_o the_o mind_n the_o argument_n or_o proof_n whereof_o be_v borrow_v from_o the_o element_n be_v sign_n and_o pledge_n of_o god_n mercy_n the_o three_o difference_n the_o papist_n teach_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o work_n do_v the_o very_a grace_n of_o justification_n be_v confer_v we_o say_v no_o because_o a_o man_n of_o year_n must_v first_o believe_v and_o be_v justify_v before_o he_o can_v be_v a_o meet_a partaker_n of_o any_o sacrament_n and_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v confer_v be_v only_o the_o increase_n of_o our_o faith_n hope_n sanctification_n etc._n etc._n our_o reason_n reason_n i._o the_o word_n preach_v and_o the_o sacrament_n differ_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o give_v christ_n and_o his_o benefit_n unto_o we_o because_o in_o the_o word_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n teach_v we_o by_o a_o voice_n convey_v to_o the_o mind_n by_o the_o bodily_a ear_n but_o in_o the_o sacrament_n annex_v to_o the_o word_n by_o certain_a sensible_a and_o bodily_a sign_n view_v by_o the_o eye_n 16._o sacrament_n be_v nothing_o but_o visible_a word_n and_o promise_n otherwise_o for_o the_o give_v itself_o they_o differ_v not_o christ_n himself_o faith_n that_o in_o the_o very_a word_n
be_v eat_v his_o own_o flesh_n which_o he_o be_v to_o give_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n and_o what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o of_o the_o lord_n supper_n augustine_n say_v that_o believer_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o baptism_n sacr._n and_o hierome_n to_o edibia_n that_o in_o baptism_n we_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n if_o thus_o much_o may_v be_v say_v of_o baptism_n why_o may_v it_o not_o also_o be_v say_v of_o the_o word_n preach_v again_o hierom_n upon_o ecclesiastes_n say_v it_o be_v profitable_a to_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n not_o only_o in_o mystery_n but_o in_o knowledge_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 3._o now_o upon_o this_o it_o follow_v that_o see_v the_o work_n do_v in_o the_o word_n preach_v confer_v not_o grace_n neither_o do_v the_o work_n do_v in_o the_o sacrament_n confer_v any_o grace_n reason_n ii_o math._n 3.11_o i_o baptize_v you_o with_o water_n to_o repentance_n but_o he_o that_o come_v after_o i_o be_v strong_a than_o i_o he_o shall_v baptize_v you_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o fire_n hence_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o grace_n in_o the_o sacrament_n proceed_v not_o from_o any_o action_n in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o john_n though_o he_o do_v not_o disjoin_v himself_o &_o his_o action_n from_o christ_n and_o the_o action_n of_o his_o spirit_n yet_o do_v he_o distinguish_v they_o plain_o in_o number_n person_n and_o effect_n to_o this_o purpose_n paul_n who_o have_v say_v of_o the_o galatian_n that_o he_o travel_v of_o they_o and_o beget_v they_o by_o the_o gospel_n say_v of_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n not_o only_o as_o he_o be_v a_o man_n but_o as_o he_o be_v a_o faithful_a apostle_n 7.3_o thereby_o exclude_v the_o whole_a evangelicall_a ministry_n whereof_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o part_n from_o the_o least_o part_n of_o divine_a operation_n or_o efficacy_n in_o confer_v of_o grace_n reason_n iii_o the_o bless_a angel_n nay_o the_o very_a flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v not_o any_o quicken_a virtue_n from_o itself_o but_o all_o this_o efficacy_n or_o virtue_n be_v in_o and_o from_o the_o godhead_n of_o the_o son_n who_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o flesh_n apprehend_v by_o faith_n derive_v heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a life_n from_o himself_o to_o the_o member_n now_o if_o there_o be_v no_o efficacy_n in_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n how_o shall_v bodily_a action_n about_o bodily_a element_n confer_v grace_n immediate_o reason_n iv._n paul_n rom._n 4._o stand_v much_o upon_o this_o to_o prove_v that_o justification_n by_o faith_n be_v not_o confer_v by_o the_o sacrament_n and_o from_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n he_o gather_v that_o abraham_n be_v first_o justify_v and_o then_o afterward_o receive_v circumcision_n the_o sign_n and_o seal_n of_o his_o righteousness_n now_o we_o know_v that_o the_o general_a condition_n of_o all_o sacrament_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o that_o baptism_n succeed_v circumcision_n and_o what_o can_v be_v more_o plain_a than_o the_o example_n of_o cornelius_n act._n 10._o who_o before_o peter_n come_v unto_o he_o have_v the_o commendation_n of_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n and_o afterward_o when_o peter_n by_o preach_v open_v more_o full_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o and_o the_o rest_n receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o after_o all_o this_o they_o be_v baptize_v now_o if_o they_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n before_o baptism_n than_o they_o receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v justify_v before_o baptism_n v._o reason_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n basil._n if_o there_o be_v any_o grace_n in_o the_o water_n it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o water_n but_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o spirit_n hierome_n say_v man_n give_v water_n but_o god_n give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n augustine_n say_v joh._n water_n touch_v the_o body_n and_o wash_v the_o heart_n but_o he_o show_v his_o meaning_n else_o where_o there_o be_v one_o water_n say_v he_o of_o the_o sacrament_n another_o of_o the_o spirit_n the_o water_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v visible_a the_o water_n of_o the_o spirit_n invisible_a that_o wash_v the_o body_n and_o signify_v what_o be_v do_v in_o the_o soul_n by_o this_o the_o soul_n be_v purge_v and_o heal_v object_n remission_n of_o sin_n regeneration_n and_o salvation_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n act._n 22.21_o eph._n 5._o gal._n 3.27_o tit._n 2._o ans._n salvation_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v ascribe_v to_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n as_o to_o the_o word_n which_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v and_o that_o as_o they_o be_v instrument_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o signify_v zeal_n and_o exhibit_v to_o the_o believe_a mind_n the_o foresay_a benefit_n but_o indeed_o the_o proper_a instrument_n whereby_o salvation_n be_v apprehend_v be_v faith_n and_o sacrament_n be_v but_o prop_n of_o faith_n further_a salvation_n two_o way_n first_o because_o by_o their_o signification_n they_o help_v to_o nourish_v and_o preserve_v faith_n second_o because_o they_o seal_v grace_n and_o salvation_n to_o we_o yea_o god_n give_v grace_n and_o salvation_n when_o we_o use_v they_o well_o so_o be_v it_o we_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o sacrament_n whereof_o also_o they_o be_v seal_n and_o thus_o we_o keep_v the_o middle_a way_n neither_o give_v too_o much_o nor_o too_o little_a to_o the_o sacrament_n the_o xx._n point_n of_o save_v faith_n or_o the_o way_n to_o life_n our_o consent_n conclus_fw-la i._o they_o teach_v it_o to_o be_v the_o property_n of_o faith_n to_o believe_v the_o whole_a whole_a word_n of_o god_n and_o especial_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n by_o christ._n conclus_fw-la ii_o they_o avouch_v that_o they_o believe_v &_o look_v to_o be_v save_v by_o christ_n and_o by_o christ_n alone_o and_o by_o the_o mere_a mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ._n conclus_fw-la iii_o three_o the_o most_o learned_a among_o they_o hold_v &_o confess_v that_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v unto_o they_o for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o law_n and_o for_o their_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n conclus_fw-la iv._o they_o avouch_v that_o they_o put_v their_o whole_a trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o mere_a mercy_n of_o god_n for_o their_o salvation_n concl._n v._n last_o they_o hold_v that_o every_o man_n must_v apply_v the_o promise_n of_o life_n everlasting_a by_o christ_n unto_o himself_o and_o this_o they_o grant_v we_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v and_o in_o these_o five_o point_n do_v they_o and_o we_o agree_v at_o least_o in_o show_n of_o word_n by_o the_o avouch_n of_o the_o five_o conclusion_n papist_n may_v easy_o escape_v the_o hand_n of_o many_o magistrate_n and_o unless_o the_o mystery_n of_o popish_a doctrine_n be_v well_o know_v any_o common_a man_n may_v easy_o be_v deceive_v &_o take_v such_o for_o good_a protestant_n that_o be_v but_o popish_a priest_n to_o this_o end_n therefore_o that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o discern_v their_o guile_n i_o will_v show_v wherein_o they_o fail_v in_o each_o of_o their_o conclusion_n and_o wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o us._n the_o difference_n touch_v the_o first_o conclusion_n they_o believe_v indeed_o all_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o more_o than_o all_o for_o they_o also_o believe_v the_o book_n apocryphal_a which_o antiquity_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n have_v exclude_v from_o the_o canon_n yea_o they_o believe_v unwritten_a tradition_n receive_v as_o they_o say_v from_o council_n the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n make_v they_o also_o of_o equal_a credit_n with_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n now_o we_o for_o our_o part_n despise_v not_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la as_o namely_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o the_o rest_n but_o we_o reverence_v they_o in_o all_o convenient_a manner_n prefer_v they_o before_o any_o other_o book_n of_o man_n in_o that_o they_o have_v be_v approve_v by_o a_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o we_o think_v they_o not_o meet_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o canon_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v believe_v but_o as_o they_o be_v consent_v with_o the_o write_a word_n and_o for_o this_o our_o do_v we_o have_v direction_n from_o athanasius_n origen_n hierom_n and_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n as_o for_o the_o unwriten_a tradition_n they_o come_v not_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o our_o faith_n neither_o can_v